Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n church_n doctrine_n popery_n 4,964 5 10.7046 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A02483 An ansvvere to a treatise vvritten by Dr. Carier, by way of a letter to his Maiestie vvherein he layeth downe sundry politike considerations; by which hee pretendeth himselfe was moued, and endeuoureth to moue others to be reconciled to the Church of Rome, and imbrace that religion, which he calleth catholike. By George Hakewil, Doctour of Diuinity, and chapleine to the Prince his Highnesse. Hakewill, George, 1578-1649.; Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. Treatise written by Mr. Doctour Carier.; Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. Copy of a letter, written by M. Doctor Carier beyond seas, to some particular friends in England. 1616 (1616) STC 12610; ESTC S103612 283,628 378

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

none_o otherwise_o of_o faith_n than_o the_o scripture_n give_v he_o warrant_v which_o it_o may_v be_v in_o your_o opinion_n be_v but_o a_o strong_a fancy_n neither_o but_o have_v you_o as_o thorough_o read_v he_o upon_o that_o point_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n as_o pighius_fw-la do_v though_o with_o a_o mind_n to_o confute_v he_o you_o may_v have_v have_v the_o grace_n to_o have_v yield_v in_o opinion_n to_o he_o as_o he_o do_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o tapper_n in_o the_o 8_o article_n of_o his_o second_o tome_n sometime_o his_o fellow-pupil_n under_o adrian_n the_o vi_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n neither_o do_v he_o in_o that_o catechism_n teach_v they_o to_o contemn_v all_o ancient_a learning_n and_o authority_n as_o you_o fain_o but_o feign_a authority_n and_o learning_n false_o so_o call_v for_o what_o learning_n have_v we_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o scripture_n or_o what_o authority_n more_o bind_v and_o yet_o for_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o godly_a father_n i_o think_v he_o vouch_v more_o than_o ever_o doctor_n carrier_n read_v though_o he_o build_v not_o his_o faith_n upon_o they_o and_o teach_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a in_o regard_n of_o such_o ancient_a learning_n and_o authority_n be_v but_o humane_a the_o advice_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o be_v regard_v or_o rather_o the_o command_n of_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n mouth_n to_o be_v obey_v 16._o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n stand_v in_o the_o way_n and_o see_v and_o ask_v for_o the_o old_a path_n where_o be_v the_o good_a way_n and_o walk_v therein_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n for_o your_o soul_n for_o it_o be_v true_a that_o with_o all_o wise_a and_o moderate_a person_n that_o kind_n of_o antiquity_n obtain_v that_o authority_n and_o reverence_n as_o it_o be_v sufficient_a matter_n to_o move_v they_o to_o make_v a_o stand_n and_o to_o discover_v and_o take_v a_o view_n but_o it_o be_v no_o warrant_n to_o guide_v or_o to_o conduct_v they_o a_o just_a ground_n i_o say_v it_o be_v of_o deliberation_n but_o not_o of_o direction_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o a_o writer_n who_o master_n doctor_n himself_o before_o name_v with_o honour_n who_o know_v not_o that_o time_n be_v true_o compare_v to_o a_o stream_n that_o carry_v down_o fresh_a and_o pure_a water_n into_o the_o salt_n sea_n of_o corruption_n which_o environ_v all_o humane_a action_n and_o therefore_o if_o man_n shall_v not_o by_o his_o industry_n virtue_n and_o policy_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o oar_n row_n against_o the_o stream_n and_o inclination_n of_o time_n all_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n be_v they_o never_o so_o pure_a will_v corrupt_v and_o degenerate_a final_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o that_o which_o you_o have_v deliver_v touch_v caluine_n and_o his_o proceed_n you_o send_v we_o to_o bezaes_n narration_n of_o calvin_n life_n but_o have_v you_o not_o in_o the_o perusal_n thereof_o shut_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o charity_n and_o only_o open_v that_o of_o malice_n and_o envy_n you_o may_v as_o easy_o have_v see_v and_o observe_v in_o the_o same_o narration_n his_o wonderful_a assiduity_n in_o read_v in_o preach_v in_o write_v in_o confer_v insomuch_o that_o be_v advise_v by_o his_o physician_n and_o by_o his_o friend_n request_v a_o little_a to_o forbear_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o body_n and_o his_o manifold_a infirmity_n his_o usual_a answer_n be_v that_o idleness_n to_o he_o be_v the_o great_a sickness_n or_o vultis_fw-la i_o otiosum_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la deprehendi_fw-la will_v you_o that_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o come_v shall_v find_v i_o do_v nothing_o his_o zeal_n to_o god_n truth_n and_o courage_n in_o maintain_v it_o such_o that_o he_o not_o only_o crush_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o quell_v like_o another_o hercules_n so_o many_o new_a monster_n of_o opinion_n by_o the_o club_n of_o god_n word_n that_o the_o very_o mention_v the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n and_o summ●_n of_o their_o several_a heresy_n will_v take_v up_o much_o time_n and_o many_o line_n his_o sound_n and_o profound_a knowledge_n in_o his_o profession_n such_o that_o melancthon_n no_o child_n in_o divinity_n be_v wont_a to_o style_v he_o by_o a_o excellency_n the_o divine_a his_o temperance_n such_o that_o for_o many_o year_n he_o take_v but_o one_o repast_n a_o day_n his_o modesty_n such_o that_o by_o his_o will_n he_o ordain_v after_o his_o death_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o monument_n erect_v to_o he_o or_o so_o much_o as_o a_o tombstone_n lay_v over_o he_o yet_o beza_n his_o colleague_n will_v not_o spare_v to_o bestow_v this_o ensue_a epitaph_n on_o he_o which_o he_o be_v as_o able_a as_o upon_o that_o sad_a occasion_n unwilling_a to_o afford_v and_o the_o other_o out_o of_o his_o desert_n as_o worthy_a as_o out_o of_o his_o modesty_n the_o crown_n of_o all_o his_o other_o virtue_n unwilling_a to_o receive_v romae_fw-la ruentis_fw-la terror_fw-la ille_fw-la maximus_fw-la quem_fw-la mortuum_fw-la lugent_fw-la boni_fw-la horrescunt_fw-la mali_fw-la ipsa_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la potuit_fw-la virtutem_fw-la discere_fw-la virtus_fw-la cur_n adeo_fw-la exiguo_fw-la ignotoque_fw-la in_o cespite_fw-la clausus_fw-la caluinus_fw-la lateat_fw-la rogas_fw-la caluinum_fw-la assidue_fw-la comitata_fw-la modestia_fw-la viwm_fw-la hoc_fw-la tumulo_fw-la manibus_fw-la condidit_fw-la ipsa_fw-la suis._n o_o te_fw-la beatum_fw-la cespitem_fw-la tanto_fw-la hospite_fw-la o_fw-la cui_fw-la invidere_fw-la cuncta_fw-la possint_fw-la marmora_fw-la after_o his_o death_n many_o of_o the_o citizen_n who_o have_v often_o see_v he_o before_o yet_o much_o desire_v to_o see_v he_o again_o and_o many_o stranger_n come_v from_o foreign_a part_n purposely_o to_o know_v he_o and_o to_o be_v know_v unto_o he_o among_o who_o be_v a_o worthy_a gentleman_n at_o that_o time_n ambassador_n in_o france_n for_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o howsoever_o malice_n have_v find_v lucianus_n in_o his_o name_n charity_n have_v find_v alcuinus_fw-la b._n c._n 28._o now_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o common_a people_n especial_o of_o islander_n not_o only_o still_o to_o affect_v more_o and_o more_o religion_n novelty_n and_o easy_a liberty_n and_o to_o be_v weary_a of_o their_o unalter_a old_a clergy_n but_o also_o to_o report_n admire_v any_o thing_n that_o come_v from_o beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o to_o cherish_v and_o comfort_v one_o another_o with_o report_v the_o good_a success_n which_o schismatic_n and_o rebel_n happen_v to_o have_v against_o their_o lawful_a prelate_n and_o ancient_a governor_n and_o to_o impute_v all_o their_o good_a fortune_n to_o their_o new_a religion_n hence_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o lawful_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v neglect_v or_o contemn_v as_o a_o relic_n or_o a_o heresy_n rag_n of_o popery_n and_o caluin_n institution_n be_v come_v from_o geneva_n and_o fair_o bind_v up_o with_o the_o instit._n preface_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v disperse_v throughout_o all_o school_n city_n and_o village_n of_o england_n and_o have_v so_o infect_v priest_n and_o people_n as_o although_o it_o be_v it_o against_o law_n yet_o be_v it_o answer_n cry_v up_o by_o voice_n to_o be_v the_o only_a current_a divinity_n in_o court_n and_o country_n in_o hope_n belike_o that_o it_o may_v one_o day_n serve_v the_o turn_n in_o england_n as_o well_o as_o it_o have_v do_v in_o geneva_n and_o in_o answer_v other_o place_n where_o it_o have_v prevail_v g._n h._n 28._o your_o countryman_n be_v herein_o much_o bind_v to_o you_o in_o that_o you_o make_v islander_n so_o much_o to_o affect_v novelty_n ascribe_v their_o change_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o changeablenesse_n of_o their_o nature_n whereas_o other_o nation_n in_o the_o continent_n of_o europe_n be_v by_o consent_n of_o those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o neither_o by_o nature_n more_o changeable_a than_o they_o that_o polander_n who_o first_o by_o his_o pen_n encounter_v his_o majesty_n premonition_n labour_v to_o wipe_v off_o the_o stain_n of_o the_o powder-treason_n from_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o actor_n lay_v it_o upon_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o english_a man_n who_o in_o all_o religion_n he_o accuse_v to_o be_v natural_o disloyal_a to_o his_o prince_n to_o his_o imputation_n of_o disloyalty_n you_o add_v the_o affectation_n of_o novelty_n thereby_o to_o lay_v a_o stain_n upon_o our_o religion_n but_o qui_fw-la mala_fw-la non_fw-la mutat_fw-la in_fw-la bonis_fw-la non_fw-la perseverat_fw-la the_o servant_n be_v not_o above_o his_o lord_n nor_o the_o disciple_n above_o his_o master_n and_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o question_n which_o the_o jew_n propose_v to_o our_o saviour_n 27._o what_o new_a doctrine_n be_v this_o and_o of_o the_o grecian_n to_o s._n paul_n 18._o may_n we_o not_o know_v what_o this_o new_a
doctrine_n whereof_o thou_o speak_v be_v but_o we_o may_v true_o answer_v both_o in_o their_o defence_n and_o our_o own_o novitas_fw-la nos_fw-la non_fw-la sumus_fw-la novatores_fw-la sed_fw-la vos_fw-la estis_fw-la veteratores_fw-la it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o affect_v novelty_n but_o you_o the_o counterfeit_a face_n of_o antiquity_n thereby_o labour_v to_o make_v a_o peace_n and_o to_o strike_v a_o league_n with_o we_o as_o the_o gibeonite_n do_v with_o joshua_n 5._o deceive_v he_o by_o the_o show_n of_o old_a sack_n old_a bottle_n old_a shoe_n old_a garment_n and_o bread_n that_o be_v dry_a and_o mouldy_a you_o far_o charge_v we_o with_o comfort_v one_o another_o in_o report_v the_o good_a success_n which_o schismatic_n and_o rebel_n happen_v to_o have_v against_o their_o governor_n whereas_o the_o very_a enemy_n of_o those_o who_o you_o call_v schismatic_n and_o rebel_n have_v be_v many_o time_n enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o good_a success_n to_o have_v come_v not_o so_o much_o from_o good_a fortune_n as_o from_o the_o extraordinary_a hand_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o have_v be_v constrain_v to_o cry_v out_o with_o pharaoh_n sorcerer_n the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v here_o at_o the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n the_o inhabitant_n be_v bring_v to_o great_a want_n as_o thuanus_n report_v it_o every_o tide_n be_v bring_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o shellfish_n he_o call_v they_o surdones_n or_o pectunculo_n which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v little_a scallop_n or_o muscle_n and_o that_o in_o great_a abundance_n for_o the_o relieve_n of_o the_o besiege_a they_o have_v never_o be_v see_v upon_o that_o coast_n before_o that_o time_n nor_o since_o of_o ziska_n the_o bohemian_a aeneas_n silvius_n afterward_o pius_n the_o second_o be_v pius_n indeed_o before_o he_o be_v so_o in_o name_n record_v it_o to_o posterity_n that_o eleven_o time_n in_o fight_a battle_n he_o return_v conqueror_n out_o of_o the_o field_n and_o be_v himself_o never_o foil_v the_o duke_n of_o medina_n general_n of_o the_o spanish_a invincible_a navy_n send_v against_o we_o for_o the_o root_n of_o we_o out_o in_o the_o year_n 1588._o and_o bless_v by_o the_o apostolical_a benediction_n when_o he_o see_v how_o the_o wind_n and_o the_o wave_n and_o the_o star_n in_o their_o order_n fight_v against_o they_o profess_v he_o think_v jesus_n christ_n be_v turn_v lutheran_n hispanus_n ipse_fw-la say_v our_o famous_a annalist_n cladem_fw-la acceptam_fw-la elizab._n ut_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la composito_fw-la animo_fw-la tulti_fw-la deoque_fw-la et_fw-la sanctis_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la tristior_fw-la fuerit_fw-la gratias_fw-la egit_fw-la et_fw-la per_fw-la hispaniam_fw-la agi_fw-la iussit_fw-la the_o king_n of_o spain_n himself_o take_v the_o blow_n patient_o as_o give_v by_o god_n and_o both_o himself_o give_v thanks_n and_o command_v his_o subject_n through_o spain_n to_o do_v the_o like_a that_o it_o fall_v no_o heavy_a in_o the_o consideration_n of_o which_o admirable_a success_n we_o may_v apply_v that_o to_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v write_v of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n o_o nimium_fw-la dilecta_fw-la deo_fw-la cui_fw-la militat_fw-la equor_fw-la et_fw-la coniurati_fw-la veniunt_fw-la ad_fw-la classica_fw-la venti_fw-la upon_o that_o occasion_n and_o not_o without_o reason_n be_v some_o coin_n stamp_v with_o this_o inscription_n glory_n to_o god_n alone_o other_o with_o this_o man_n propose_v god_n dispose_v and_o last_o other_o with_o this_o impius_fw-la fugit_fw-la nemine_fw-la sequente_fw-la which_o all_o tend_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o it_o be_v god_n fight_v for_o we_o in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o bizarro_n a_o italian_a and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v find_v no_o protestant_n speak_v of_o our_o late_a renown_a sovereign_n etc._n quod_fw-la verò_fw-la ad_fw-la i_o attinet_fw-la id_fw-la tantum_fw-la in_o praesentia_fw-la dixerim_fw-la elizabetham_fw-la britanniae_fw-la reginam_fw-la singulari_fw-la dei_fw-la ope_v max._n bonitate_fw-la ac_fw-la providentia_fw-la gubernari_fw-la quamuis_fw-la enim_fw-la ipsamet_fw-la egregiâ_fw-la virtute_fw-la ac_fw-la sapientia_fw-la praedita_fw-la sit_fw-la et_fw-la apud_fw-la se_fw-la consiliarios_fw-la habeat_fw-la summo_fw-la iudicio_fw-la summaque_fw-la prudentia_fw-la prestantes_fw-la tamen_fw-la fatendum_fw-la est_fw-la humana_fw-la consilia_fw-la persaepe_fw-la inania_fw-la reddi_fw-la nisi_fw-la ea_fw-la divinitù_fw-fr regantur_fw-la id_fw-la vero_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la esse_fw-la iudicem_fw-la superiorum_fw-la temporum_fw-la facit_fw-la recordatio_fw-la cum_fw-la cogito_fw-la quot_fw-la interni_fw-la externique_fw-la host_n huic_fw-la ope_v reginae_fw-la insidiati_fw-la sint_fw-la et_fw-la quam_fw-la mirabiliter_fw-la illam_fw-la deus_fw-la ab_fw-la eorum_fw-la insidijs_fw-la atque_fw-la conatibus_fw-la eripuerit_fw-la touch_v myself_o i_o will_v only_o say_v this_o for_o the_o present_a that_o elizabeth_n queen_n of_o britanny_n have_v be_v hitherto_o preserve_v by_o the_o singular_a goodness_n and_o providence_n of_o almighty_a god_n for_o though_o herself_o be_v endue_v with_o singular_a virtue_n and_o wisdom_n and_o she_o have_v about_o her_o counselor_n of_o excellent_a judgement_n and_o foresight_n in_o the_o manage_n of_o her_o affair_n yet_o must_v we_o confess_v that_o humane_a counsel_n be_v often_o frustrate_v unless_o they_o be_v guide_v from_o heaven_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v so_o think_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o latter_a time_n enforce_v i_o when_o i_o call_v to_o mind_n how_o many_o homebred_a and_o foreign_a enemy_n have_v lay_v in_o wait_n for_o the_o life_n of_o that_o virtuous_a queen_n and_o how_o miraculous_o god_n have_v free_v she_o from_o all_o their_o plot_n and_o assault_n you_o go_v forward_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o lawful_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v contemn_v as_o a_o rag_n of_o popery_n and_o caluin_n institution_n cry_v up_o by_o voice_n in_o court_n and_o country_n in_o hope_n it_o may_v one_o day_n serve_v the_o like_a turn_n in_o england_n as_o it_o have_v do_v in_o geneva_n as_o if_o geneva_n have_v not_o discharge_v herself_o of_o the_o claim_n of_o her_o bishop_n and_o duke_n before_o calvin_n compile_v his_o institution_n or_o as_o if_o we_o know_v not_o that_o caluin_n institution_n make_v nothing_o against_o the_o government_n of_o lawful_a magistrate_n or_o if_o it_o be_v a_o book_n so_o dangerous_a as_o you_o will_v make_v it_o a_o wonder_n it_o be_v to_o i_o that_o neither_o yourself_o nor_o any_o as_o yet_o of_o that_o side_n have_v so_o much_o as_o undertake_v a_o through_o confutation_n of_o it_o must_v it_o need_v be_v that_o all_o who_o embrace_v his_o pain_n and_o learning_n in_o those_o institution_n intend_v the_o subversion_n of_o the_o state_n or_o present_o contemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n your_o old_a master_n archbishop_n whitegift_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n who_o maintain_v to_o his_o utmost_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o give_v he_o calvin_n his_o due_a also_o labour_v always_o where_o any_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o countenance_v his_o write_n with_o calvin_n authority_n and_o special_o out_o of_o that_o book_n which_o you_o most_o mislike_v yield_v he_o the_o title_n of_o a_o famous_a and_o learned_a man_n nay_o even_o in_o the_o use_n of_o thing_n indifferent_a he_o give_v this_o testimony_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o moderation_n 4._o if_o mr._n calvin_n be_v alive_a say_v he_o and_o right_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o our_o church_n and_o controversy_n true_o i_o very_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v condemn_v your_o do_n and_o i_o be_o the_o rather_o induce_v to_o think_v so_o because_o i_o understand_v he_o to_o have_v allow_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o english_a church_n be_v at_o geneva_n which_o you_o altogether_o mislike_v to_o this_o archbishop_n testimony_n i_o can_v add_v the_o opinion_n of_o his_o predecessor_n cranmer_n grindal_n and_o parker_n gather_v out_o of_o their_o several_a epistle_n to_o calvin_n and_o other_o write_n but_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o that_o of_o bishop_n jewel_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o neglect_v or_o contemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o a_o relic_n or_o rag_n of_o popery_n as_o that_o the_o confession_n extant_a in_o his_o apology_n for_o our_o church_n be_v register_v as_o the_o authentical_a doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n as_o well_o in_o the_o body_n as_o in_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n but_o archbishop_n 31._o whitegift_n go_v far_o make_v both_o his_o apology_n &_o the_o defence_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o by_o this_o archbishop_n authority_n be_v it_o order_v that_o those_o his_o book_n shall_v be_v buy_v of_o every_o parish_n and_o chain_v in_o their_o church_n to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o people_n at_o vacant_a time_n yet_o this_o worthy_a bishop_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o apology_n 4._o
term_v calvin_n a_o reverend_a father_n and_o worthy_a ornament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o touch_v his_o book_n of_o christian_a institution_n in_o particular_a m._n hooker_n who_o be_v well_o know_a not_o to_o have_v contemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o a_o rag_n of_o popery_n thus_o write_v two_o thing_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o calvin_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n of_o principal_a moment_n there_o be_v which_o have_v deserve_o procure_v he_o honour_n through_o the_o world_n the_o one_o his_o exceed_a pain_n in_o compose_v the_o institution_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o other_o his_o no_o less_o industrious_a travail_n for_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o the_o same_o institution_n in_o which_o two_o thing_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v that_o afterward_o bestow_v their_o labour_n he_o gain_v the_o advantage_n of_o prejudice_n against_o they_o if_o they_o gainesayed_n and_o of_o glory_n above_o they_o if_o they_o consent_v then_o which_o i_o can_v imagine_v what_o can_v be_v utter_v more_o effectual_o thus_o malice_n will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o see_v that_o worth_n in_o calvin_n and_o his_o write_n which_o these_o worthy_n profess_v and_o publish_v who_o be_v notwithstanding_o more_o earnest_a and_o zealous_a patroness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o yourself_o but_o it_o may_v be_v you_o think_v it_o will_v be_v credit_n enough_o for_o you_o only_o to_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o so_o stout_a and_o renown_a a_o champion_n howbeit_o to_o hunt_v after_o applause_n by_o dishonour_v the_o name_n of_o famous_a man_n be_v hold_v by_o s._n jerome_n and_o be_v account_v by_o all_o good_a and_o wise_a man_n but_o a_o trick_n of_o vain_a and_o childish_a arrogancy_n there_o be_v less_o comparison_n betwixt_o carier_n and_o calvin_n than_o calvin_n and_o stapleton_n who_o notwithstanding_o 1._o a_o great_a divine_a and_o public_a professor_n of_o one_o of_o our_o own_o university_n compare_v together_o profess_v there_o be_v more_o sound_a divinity_n in_o caluin_n little_a finger_n than_o stapletons_n head_n or_o whole_a body_n i_o will_v conclude_v my_o answer_n to_o this_o section_n with_o the_o word_n of_o a_o grave_a 509._o bishop_n yet_o live_v no_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o his_o write_n show_v calvin_n be_v so_o well_o know_v say_v he_o to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v learned_a or_o wise_a for_o his_o great_a pain_n and_o good_a labour_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o a_o few_o snarl_a friar_n can_v impeach_v his_o name_n though_o you_o will_v never_o so_o wretched_o pervert_v his_o word_n thus_o much_o of_o calvin_n and_o his_o write_n for_o i_o dare_v not_o go_v so_o far_o as_o thurius_n praeter_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la post_fw-la christi_fw-la tempora_fw-la chartas_fw-la huic_fw-la peperere_fw-la viro_fw-la saecula_fw-la nulla_fw-la parem_fw-la b._n c._n 29._o these_o reason_n or_o rather_o corruption_n of_o state_n have_v so_o confound_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o slander_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o have_v turn_v man_n brain_n and_o make_v the_o multitude_n on_o slander_n both_o side_n like_o two_o fool_n which_o be_v set_v back_o to_o back_o do_v think_v they_o be_v as_o far_o asunder_o as_o the_o horizon_n be_v they_o look_v upon_o but_o if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o about_o command_v they_o to_o turn_v each_o of_o they_o but_o a_o quarter_n about_o and_o look_v both_o one_o way_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o your_o majesty_n and_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n they_o shall_v present_o see_v themselves_o to_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o near_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n than_o the_o puritanical_a preacher_n on_o they_o both_o side_n do_v make_v they_o believe_v they_o be_v i_o can_v not_o in_o the_o brevity_n of_o this_o discourse_n descend_v into_o particular_n but_o if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o command_v i_o or_o any_o other_o honest_a man_n that_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o understand_v and_o observe_v learning_n all_o side_n free_o and_o plain_o to_o set_v down_o the_o prove_v difference_n betwixt_o caluinisme_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o law_n and_o then_o to_o show_v locos_fw-la concessos_fw-la and_o locos_fw-la controversos_fw-la betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o distance_n that_o will_v be_v leave_v betwixt_o for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n may_v by_o your_o majesty_n be_v easy_o compound_v g._n h._n 29._o whether_o reason_n or_o rather_o corruption_n of_o state_n have_v not_o breed_v confusion_n rather_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o england_n let_v rome_n infinite_a ambition_n and_o insatiable_a covetousness_n mask_v under_o pretence_n of_o doctrine_n testify_v as_o long_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n keep_v they_o to_o their_o profession_n in_o the_o gain_n of_o soul_n to_o god_n matter_n go_v well_o for_o doctrine_n but_o when_o once_o they_o turn_v statist_n &_o in_o stead_n of_o gain_v soul_n cast_v about_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n than_o be_v their_o friar_n and_o flatterer_n find_v who_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o shape_n and_o frame_v her_o doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o model_n of_o state_n before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v call_v in_o the_o memory_n of_o some_o yet_o live_a it_o be_v make_v evident_a by_o my_o learned_a brother_n dr._n carleton_n in_o his_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n against_o the_o tridentines_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o justify_v faith_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v now_o public_o teach_v and_o profess_v with_o us._n if_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o will_v understand_v her_o chief_a prelate_n not_o those_o friar_n and_o flatterer_n which_o belong_v rather_o to_o her_o court_n then_o her_o church_n from_o whence_o then_o arise_v this_o confusion_n of_o doctrine_n which_o follow_v after_o but_o only_o from_o that_o corruption_n of_o state_n which_o go_v before_o and_o yet_o it_o can_v but_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o as_o our_o body_n first_o warm_v our_o clothes_n and_o then_o our_o clothes_n serve_v to_o keep_v warm_a our_o body_n so_o the_o corruption_n of_o state_n first_o bring_v forth_o this_o confusion_n of_o doctrine_n but_o be_v bring_v forth_o the_o daughter_n serve_v to_o nourish_v and_o maintain_v the_o mother_n now_o for_o the_o confound_a of_o our_o doctrine_n we_o answer_v with_o s._n paul_n 3._o if_o our_o gospel_n say_v he_o be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v so_o we_o if_o our_o doctrine_n be_v confound_v it_o be_v to_o they_o 4._o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v confound_v and_o blind_v lest_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n shall_v shine_v unto_o they_o the_o second_o thing_n which_o you_o charge_v we_o with_o be_v the_o slander_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v your_o romanist_n clear_a of_o that_o accusation_n or_o dare_v any_o man_n of_o judgement_n and_o learning_n discharge_v they_o do_v not_o 5._o pererius_n accuse_v catharinus_n for_o call_v that_o a_o intolerable_a and_o desperate_a opinion_n of_o luther_n touch_v reprobation_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v the_o same_o opinion_n and_o none_o other_o as_o pererius_n confess_v then_o sentantia_fw-la s._n augustine_n maintain_v touch_v the_o same_o point_n do_v not_o 7._o reynolds_n our_o country_n man_n howbeit_o otherwise_o malicious_o bitter_a against_o calvin_n special_o in_o his_o caluino_n turkism_n in_o his_o judgement_n free_a calvin_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o latter_a year_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v still_o press_v upon_o he_o both_o by_o yourself_o and_o other_o do_v not_o 19_o bellarmine_n clear_v he_o from_o make_v the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n to_o be_v from_o himself_o and_o not_o from_o the_o first_o with_o which_o error_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v charge_v by_o trinitate_fw-la genebrard_n by_o dubitantius_fw-la lyndan_n by_o baptista_n canisius_n and_o for_o our_o own_o church_n do_v not_o 48._o bristol_n affirm_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v prove_v by_o experience_n to_o be_v indeed_o no_o religion_n do_v not_o 1._o allen_n speak_v of_o our_o sacrament_n service_n and_o sermon_n call_v they_o thing_n which_o assure_o procure_v damnation_n do_v not_o reynolds_n in_o the_o book_n before_o name_v endeavour_n to_o make_v our_o religion_n worse_o than_o the_o turkish_a not_o distinguish_v betwixt_o caluinisme_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o
a_o answer_n to_o a_o treatise_n write_v by_o dr._n carier_n by_o way_n of_o letter_n to_o his_o majesty_n wherein_o he_o lay_v down_o sundry_a politic_a consideration_n by_o which_o he_o pretend_v himself_o be_v move_v and_o endeavour_v to_o move_v other_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o embrace_v that_o religion_n which_o he_o call_v catholic_a by_o george_n hakewil_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o chaplain_n to_o the_o prince_n his_o highness_n b._n c._n translation_n my_o heart_n will_v utter_v forth_o a_o good_a matter_n i_o will_v entreat_v in_o my_o work_n of_o the_o king_n g._n h._n give_v thy_o judgement_n to_o the_o king_n o_o god_n and_o thy_o righteousness_n to_o the_o king_n son_n imprint_v at_o london_n by_o john_n bill_n 1616._o cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n dread_a sovereign_n have_v this_o letter_n of_o dr._n carier_n be_v impart_v or_o the_o drift_n of_o it_o only_o reach_v to_o your_o majesty_n it_o will_v have_v deserve_v none_o other_o answer_n then_o your_o majesty_n private_a censure_n and_o may_v well_o have_v be_v bury_v in_o silence_n with_o the_o author_n of_o it_o but_o now_o that_o it_o not_o only_o aim_v in_o particular_a at_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n politic_a first_o the_o noble_n than_o the_o commons_o and_o last_o the_o clergy_n but_o withal_o be_v publish_v to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n and_o spread_v through_o all_o the_o quarter_n of_o your_o land_n for_o the_o better_a effect_v of_o that_o it_o aim_v unto_o and_o be_v not_o a_o little_a magnify_v by_o the_o romish_a faction_n it_o must_v needs_o argue_v in_o we_o either_o want_n of_o wisdom_n in_o prevent_v a_o mischief_n or_o of_o power_n in_o provide_v for_o our_o own_o safety_n or_o of_o zeal_n and_o sincerity_n in_o our_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n if_o it_o shall_v pass_v without_o some_o discovery_n aswell_o of_o the_o malicious_a scope_n to_o which_o it_o tend_v as_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o argument_n by_o which_o it_o endeavour_n to_o persuade_v the_o main_a end_n which_o it_o drive_v at_o be_v either_o a_o total_a reconcilement_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o if_o that_o can_v be_v a_o partial_a toleration_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n the_o general_a mean_n by_o which_o it_o strive_v to_o compass_v this_o end_n be_v first_o by_o work_v a_o distraction_n even_o among_o those_o your_o subject_n who_o every_o way_n conform_v themselves_o aswell_o to_o the_o doctrine_n as_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o public_a allowance_n in_o make_v some_o puritan_n and_o some_o protestant_n who_o in_o his_o language_n 41._o can_v endure_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v but_o can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v imply_v thereby_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v puritan_n some_o caluinist_n and_o some_o temperate_a man_n 45._o who_o can_v but_o in_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o he_o call_v catholic_a thereby_o imply_v the_o rest_n to_o be_v caluinist_n the_o one_o he_o term_v the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o other_o his_o honest_a and_o love_a brethren_n whereof_o he_o profess_v he_o know_v many_o and_o himself_o to_o be_v one_o whereas_o in_o truth_n if_o any_o such_o there_o be_v the_o difference_n shall_v rather_o have_v be_v make_v betwixt_o protestant_n and_o papist_n english_a and_o romish_a catholic_n since_o they_o who_o can_v be_v content_a the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o reformation_n can_v in_o my_o judgement_n be_v none_o other_o than_o papist_n and_o those_o that_o in_o their_o judgement_n approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pretend_a catholic_a religion_n can_v as_o far_o as_o i_o apprehend_v it_o be_v none_o other_o than_o romish_a catholic_n thus_o those_o who_o we_o call_v papist_n he_o call_v temperate_a protestant_n and_o those_o who_o we_o call_v protestant_n he_o call_v state_n puritan_n the_o second_o general_a mean_n for_o the_o compass_v of_o his_o desire_a end_n be_v a_o endeavour_n to_o work_v a_o utter_a separation_n betwixt_o our_o church_n and_o other_o reform_a church_n special_o those_o of_o france_n and_o the_o netherlands_o who_o therefore_o in_o contempt_n he_o call_v hugonot_n and_o geux_n and_o their_o doctrine_n caluinisme_n intend_v thereby_o as_o i_o conceive_v either_o to_o weaken_v our_o strength_n by_o leave_v we_o to_o stand_v single_a or_o which_o be_v worse_o to_o enforce_v we_o at_o length_n to_o relapse_n upon_o rome_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n be_v he_o bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o their_o doctrine_n make_v as_o much_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o that_o of_o rome_n whereas_o the_o write_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n aswell_o on_o their_o as_o on_o our_o side_n our_o harmony_n of_o confession_n the_o testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n nay_o the_o bull_n pope_n himself_o in_o his_o bull_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n your_o majesty_n 109_o book_n and_o practice_v in_o the_o match_v of_o that_o noble_a lady_n your_o daughter_n and_o in_o permit_v those_o church_n the_o free_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n within_o your_o dominion_n so_o plain_o evince_v the_o contrary_a that_o i_o wonder_v have_v let_v fall_v so_o foul_a a_o blot_n from_o his_o pen_n he_o dare_v present_v it_o to_o your_o majesty_n view_n and_o yet_o i_o need_v not_o wonder_n consider_v he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o tell_v your_o majesty_n that_o for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v write_v in_o your_o apology_n or_o premonition_n you_o may_v when_o you_o please_v admit_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n which_o must_v needs_o argue_v either_o that_o he_o be_v mere_o ignorant_a what_o your_o majesty_n have_v write_v or_o care_v not_o at_o all_o what_o himself_o write_v regard_v rather_o the_o evenness_n of_o his_o style_n and_o the_o cadencie_n of_o his_o sentence_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o assertion_n like_o false_a window_n bear_v proportion_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o building_n but_o without_o light_n by_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o assertion_n your_o majesty_n may_v make_v a_o estimate_n of_o the_o whole_a piece_n in_o which_o if_o i_o can_v judge_v any_o thing_n i_o have_v not_o meet_v within_o the_o narrow_a compass_n of_o so_o short_a a_o treatise_n so_o formal_o pen_v and_o carry_v so_o fair_a a_o outside_n so_o many_o weak_a argument_n so_o many_o gross_a mistake_n so_o many_o notorious_a falsehood_n so_o many_o irreconciliable_a contradiction_n so_o many_o sandy_a and_o disjoint_a consequence_n howsoever_o be_v his_o proof_n never_o so_o strong_a so_o sure_a so_o true_a so_o consonant_a so_o coherent_a yet_o be_v he_o a_o man_n most_o unfit_a to_o intermeddle_v in_o a_o business_n of_o union_n and_o pacification_n who_o be_v so_o far_o engage_v to_o one_o party_n as_o by_o his_o own_o acknowledgement_n he_o be_v persuade_v 20._o that_o all_o the_o religion_n at_o this_o day_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a religion_n and_o promise_v particular_o to_o justify_v it_o from_o point_n to_o point_n when_o time_n and_o opportunity_n shall_v serve_v and_o your_o majesty_n together_o with_o we_o of_o the_o same_o profession_n he_o range_v 13._o among_o jew_n and_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n for_o refuse_v to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o god_n bless_v not_o his_o vain_a project_n mr._n henry_n constable_n die_v within_o fortnight_n after_o he_o come_v from_o paris_n by_o cardinal_n perron_n appointment_n to_o liege_n to_o confer_v with_o he_o and_o himself_o a_o while_n after_o in_o paris_n within_o a_o month_n of_o his_o come_n thither_o to_o confer_v with_o the_o cardinal_n yet_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o abel_n be_v dead_a he_o yet_o speak_v though_o in_o a_o different_a manner_n and_o the_o speech_n of_o dead_a man_n common_o prove_v more_o effectual_a more_o profitable_a or_o more_o dangerous_a than_o that_o of_o the_o live_n for_o your_o majesty_n there_o be_v god_n be_v thank_v no_o fear_n at_o all_o the_o obligation_n by_o which_o you_o have_v tie_v yourself_o to_o the_o religion_n establish_v among_o we_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o strong_a and_o withal_o his_o motive_n for_o inducement_n to_o the_o contrary_a so_o weak_a deal_v with_o your_o majesty_n as_o the_o devil_n do_v with_o our_o saviour_n who_o be_v beat_v from_o scripture_n fall_v to_o the_o promise_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o kingdom_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n to_o perform_v only_o for_o their_o sake_n some_o reply_n seem_v not_o unnecessary_a of_o who_o it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v which_o he_o false_o affirm_v of_o your_o majesty_n that_o 6._o they_o embrace_v shadow_n
upon_o due_a search_n i_o find_v to_o be_v most_o true_a for_o i_o find_v the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o the_o catechism_n therein_o contain_v to_o hold_v no_o point_n of_o doctrine_n express_o contrary_a to_o antiquity_n but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v very_o defective_a and_o contain_v not_o enough_o and_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o i_o predestination_n sacrament_n grace_n freewill_n sin_n the_o new_a catechism_n and_o sermon_n of_o those_o preacher_n do_v run_v whole_o against_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o catechism_n therein_o and_o do_v make_v as_o little_a account_n of_o the_o doctrine_n establish_v by_o law_n as_o they_o do_v of_o the_o discipline_n but_o in_o the_o one_o they_o find_v opposition_n by_o those_o that_o have_v private_a interest_n in_o the_o other_o they_o say_v what_o they_o list_v because_o no_o man_n think_v himself_o k_o hurt_n g._n h._n 7_o if_o our_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o catechism_n therein_o contain_v hold_v no_o point_n of_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o antiquity_n as_o you_o affirm_v sure_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v needs_o be_v contrary_a to_o antiquity_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o hold_v diverse_a point_n contrary_a to_o it_o if_o we_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o preface_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o equal_a authority_n of_o state_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o book_n it_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o very_a entrance_n there_o be_v never_o any_o thing_n by_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n so_o well_o devise_v or_o so_o sure_o establish_v which_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n have_v not_o be_v corrupt_v as_o among_o other_o thing_n it_o may_v plain_o appear_v by_o the_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o church_n common_o call_v divine_a service_n the_o reason_n be_v add_v a_o little_a after_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o godly_a and_o decent_a order_n of_o the_o father_n be_v alter_v and_o neglect_v by_o plant_v in_o uncertain_a story_n legend_n respond_v verse_n vain_a repetition_n commemoration_n synodal_n that_o common_o when_o any_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v begin_v before_o three_o or_o four_o chapter_n be_v read_v out_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v unread_a another_o reason_n be_v there_o annex_v that_o whereas_o s._n paul_n will_v have_v none_o other_o language_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o church_n than_o they_o understand_v and_o have_v profit_n by_o hear_v of_o the_o same_o the_o service_n in_o this_o church_n of_o england_n these_o many_o year_n have_v be_v read_v in_o latin_a to_o the_o people_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o so_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v with_o their_o ●ares_n only_o but_o their_o mind_n have_v no●_n be_v edify_v thereby_o now_o for_o the_o body_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n i_o will_v first_o begin_v with_o the_o division_n of_o the_o commandment_n the_o church_n o●_n rome_n join_v the_o two_o first_o in_o one_o the_o better_a thereby_o to_o cloak_v their_o idolatry_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n but_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n divide_v they_o into_o two_o therein_o follow_v two_o of_o the_o father_n at_o most_o except_v all_o antiquity_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n teach_v that_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n carnal_o the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o form_n of_o administer_a that_o sacrament_n that_o we_o do_v both_o spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n feed_v on_o he_o in_o our_o heart_n eat_v and_o drink_v in_o remembrance_n that_o c_o h_o r_o i_o s_o t_o die_v and_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o us._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v that_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o c_o h_o r_o i_o s_o t_o be_v to_o be_v iterate_v the_o common_a prayer_n book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o be_v by_o himself_o once_o offer_v he_o be_v a_o full_a perfect_a and_o sufficient_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o ●innes_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o also_o meet_v with_o the_o romish_a satisfaction_n for_o venial_a sin_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o temporal_a punishment_n dew_n to_o mortal_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n of_o water_n suffice_v to_o save_v infant_n the_o common_a prayer_n book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o public_a baptism_n that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v join_v thereunto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o laijk_v and_o woman_n may_v in_o some_o case_n lawful_o baptise_v the_o common_a prayer_n book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o private_a baptism_n that_o none_o may_v do_v it_o lawful_o but_o the_o lawful_a minister_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o child_n may_v be_v confirm_v before_o they_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n and_o be_v able_a to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o common_a prayer_n book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o order_n set_v down_o for_o confirmation_n teach_v and_o command_v the_o contrary_a more_o may_v be_v say_v to_o this_o point_n but_o this_o shall_v suffice_v to_o show_v that_o if_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o no_o point_n of_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o antiquity_n as_o m_n ●_o doctor_n affirm_v then_o must_v antiquity_n need_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o and_o our_o common_a prayer_n book_n be_v contrary_a each_o to_o other_o but_o you_o further_o add_v that_o though_o it_o contain_v no_o point_n contrary_a to_o antiquity_n yet_o be_v it_o very_o defective_a and_o contain_v not_o enough_o indeed_o we_o confess_v y●_z we_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v warrant_n we_o pray_v to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o to_o god_n &_o to_o saint_n we_o pray_v for_o the_o live_n they_o for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a we_o acknowledge_v 2._o sacrament_n they_o to_o those_o two_o add_v five_o more_o we_o make_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n proper_o a_o sacrament_n they_o a_o sacrament_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o propitiatory_a we_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n they_o by_o his_o merit_n and_o their_o own_o the_o principal_a ground_n of_o all_o these_o addition_n be_v that_o we_o make_v scripture_n the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n they_o both_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n and_o by_o mingle_v the_o water_n of_o their_o own_o invention_n with_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o have_v make_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n of_o none_o effect_n and_o sure_o if_o defect_n may_v just_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o excess_n may_v much_o rather_o to_o they_o who_o in_o their_o pontifical_a spend_v seven_o leaf_n in_o the_o large_a fol._n only_o about_o the_o benediction_n of_o bell_n which_o be_v indeed_o little_a different_a from_o baptism_n and_o many_o hundred_o about_o such_o foppery_n and_o trifle_n as_o wise_a man_n among_o themselves_o can_v but_o laugh_v at_o and_o yet_o dare_v not_o speak_v against_o and_o good_a man_n pity_n though_o they_o can_v remedy_v i_o i_o marvel_v what_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n grace_n freewill_n or_o sin_n you_o find_v in_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n or_o catechism_n therein_o the_o end_n of_o the_o one_o be_v not_o to_o set_v down_o doctrinal_a position_n but_o the_o exercise_n of_o religious_a act_n and_o of_o the_o other_o as_o brief_o as_o may_v be_v to_o instruct_v child_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n not_o man_n of_o ripe_a age_n in_o the_o controversy_n k_o it_o be_v to_o i_o strange_a that_o you_o dare_v write_v thus_o to_o his_o majesty_n who_o make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o his_o pen_n when_o other_o christian_a prince_n and_o church_n be_v silent_a that_o he_o think_v himself_o hurt_v by_o the_o pestilent_a subtlety_n of_o vorstius_n howbeit_o he_o be_v not_o under_o his_o dominion_n &_o by_o legate_n his_o own_o subject_n who_o be_v burn_v at_o london_n for_o arianisme_n some_o few_o year_n since_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o clear_o of_o opinion_n that_o his_o holiness_n will_v take_v it_o much_o more_o to_o heart_n and_o think_v himself_o more_o hurt_v if_o a_o friar_n shall_v preach_v against_o his_o power_n in_o depose_v king_n and_o dispose_v of_o kingdom_n then_o if_o he_o deny_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n from_o the_o first_o or_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o three_o from_o the_o other_o two_o b._n c._n 8._o this_o true_o be_v a_o increase_n of_o my_o grief_n for_o know_v diverse_a of_o those_o preacher_n to_o be_v
exposition_n publish_v upon_o the_o 7._o 8._o 9_o and_o 10._o verse_n of_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o revel_v or_o last_o his_o subscription_n to_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n in_o the_o year_n 1581._o assoon_o as_o he_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n you_o will_v have_v have_v little_a reason_n to_o have_v presume_v so_o far_o upon_o he_o for_o harken_v to_o any_o peace_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ●●_o as_o long_o as_o her_o whoredom_n and_o witchcraft_n r●maine_n yet_o in_o such_o abundance_n and_o be_v offer_v cure_n ●hat_n we_o may_v know_v she_o be_v babylon_n she_o have_v and_o still_o do_v wilful_o 9_o refuse_v to_o be_v cure_v but_o the_o sandy_a ground_n of_o the_o vain_a presumption_n will_v yet_o more_o lively_o appear_v if_o the_o form_n of_o that_o subscription_n be_v well_o consider_v in_o which_o have_v rehearse_v and_o renounce_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o namely_o the_o pope_n usurp_a authority_n over_o the_o scripture_n over_o the_o church_n over_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n his_o devilish_a mass_n his_o blasphemous_a priesthood_n his_o profane_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o erroneous_a and_o bloody_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n he_o promise_v and_o swear_v by_o the_o great_a name_n to_o the_o lord_n god_n to_o persevere_v in_o that_o faith_n and_o to_o defend_v it_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o his_o power_n under_o pain_n of_o all_o the_o curse_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o danger_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o fearful_a day_n of_o judgement_n and_o further_o straight_o charge_v and_o command_v all_o his_o officer_n and_o minister_n to_o make_v the_o same_o subscription_n themselves_o and_o to_o take_v it_o of_o other_o under_o their_o charge_n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o arrive_v to_o ripe_a age_n he_o alter_v his_o judgement_n in_o his_o instruction_n to_o his_o son_n he_o give_v we_o this_o assurance_n as_o for_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o religion_n say_v he_o i_o need_v not_o to_o dilate_v they_o i_o be_o no_o hypocrite_n follow_v my_o footstep_n and_o your_o own_o present_a education_n therein_o b._n c._n 10._o but_o when_o after_o my_o long_a hope_n i_o at_o the_o last_o do_v plain_o perceive_v that_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n have_v suffer_v the_o devil_n the_o athour_n of_o dissension_n so_o far_o to_o prevail_v as_o partly_o by_o the_o furious_a practice_n of_o some_o desperate_a catholic_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o practice_n fiery_a suggestion_n of_o all_o plot_n violent_a puritan_n he_o have_v realm_n quite_o divert_v that_o peaceable_a and_o temperate_a course_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o that_o i_o must_v now_o either_o alter_v my_o judgement_n which_o be_v impossible_a or_o preach_v against_o my_o conscience_n which_o be_v untolerable_a lord_n what_o anxiety_n and_o distraction_n of_o soul_n do_v i_o suffer_v day_n &_o night_n what_o strife_n betwixt_o my_o judgement_n which_o be_v whole_o for_o the_o q_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o my_o affection_n which_o be_v whole_o to_o enjoy_v the_o r_o favour_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o the_o love_n of_o my_o friend_n and_o country_n this_o grief_n of_o soul_n now_o grow_v desperate_a do_v still_o more_o and_o more_o increase_v the_o infirmity_n of_o my_o body_n and_o yet_o i_o be_v so_o loath_a to_o become_v a_o profess_a catholic_a with_o the_o displeasure_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o of_o all_o my_o honourable_a and_o love_a friend_n as_o i_o rather_o desire_v to_o silence_v my_o judgement_n with_o the_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v before_o i_o then_o to_o satisfy_v it_o with_o reconcile_n myself_o unto_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o it_o be_v god_n will_v that_o ever_o as_o i_o be_v about_o to_o forget_v the_o care_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o settle_v myself_o to_o the_o world_n among_o my_o neighbour_n i_o meet_v with_o such_o humour_n as_o i_o see_v by_o their_o violence_n against_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a religion_n be_v like_o rather_o to_o waken_v my_o soul_n by_o torture_n then_o bring_v it_o asleep_a by_o temper_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_v drive_v to_o s_o recoil_v to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o church_n that_o i_o may_v find_v rest_n unto_o my_o soul_n g._n h._n 10._o q_n certain_o for_o their_o sin_n it_o be_v that_o god_n suffer_v they_o to_o plot_n so_o barbarous_a a_o design_n but_o for_o our_o good_a we_o hope_v if_o in_o nothing_o else_o yet_o in_o work_v in_o we_o a_o strong_a hatred_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o produce_v such_o effect_n and_o in_o awaken_n we_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o like_a mischievous_a plot_n again_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o like_a may_v be_v plot_v we_o excuse_v not_o ourselves_o but_o in_o this_o business_n we_o have_v rather_o taste_v of_o god_n mercy_n which_o we_o deserve_v not_o then_o of_o his_o judgement_n which_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v we_o deserve_v r_o quis_fw-la tulerit_fw-la graccho_n deseditione_fw-la querentes_fw-la what_o patient_a ear_n can_v endure_v he_o talk_v of_o nothing_o but_o peace_n and_o unity_n who_o do_v ever_o blow_v the_o coal_n of_o dissension_n both_o in_o court_n and_o country_n as_o well_o in_o the_o college_n where_o he_o live_v a_o fellow_n as_o in_o the_o church_n where_o he_o be_v a_o canon_n s_o so_o it_o may_v well_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o your_o own_o word_n 22._o that_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o your_o grief_n be_v that_o you_o see_v your_o ambitious_a humour_n be_v now_o cross_v in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v not_o keep_v the_o old_a wont_a and_o withal_o rise_v to_o place_n of_o honour_n t_o your_o apostasy_n and_o forsake_v the_o faith_n and_o church_n in_o which_o you_o be_v baptize_v you_o call_v a_o recoil_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o church_n neither_o will_v i_o much_o stand_v upon_o it_o since_o we_o know_v that_o antichrist_n must_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n bear_v himself_o as_o god_n b._n c._n 11._o and_o yet_o because_o i_o have_v hear_v often_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v contrary_a to_o her_o doctrine_n i_o think_v good_a to_o make_v one_o trial_n more_o before_o i_o resolve_v and_o therefore_o have_v the_o advice_n of_o diverse_a learned_a physician_n to_o go_v to_o the_o spa_n for_o the_o health_n of_o my_o body_n i_o think_v good_a to_o make_v a_o virtue_n of_o necessity_n and_o to_o get_v leave_n to_o go_v the_o rather_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o my_o soul_n five_o hope_v to_o find_v some_o great_a offence_n in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o i_o have_v do_v in_o her_o book_n that_o so_o i_o may_v return_v better_o content_v and_o persecute_v and_o abhor_v the_o catholic_n at_o home_n after_o i_o shall_v find_v they_o so_o wicked_a and_o idolatrous_a abroad_o as_o they_o be_v in_o every_o pulpit_n in_o england_n affirm_v to_o be_v for_o this_o purpose_n before_o i_o will_v frequent_v their_o church_n i_o talk_v with_o such_o learned_a man_n as_o i_o can_v meet_v withal_o and_o do_v of_o purpose_n dispute_v against_o they_o and_o with_o all_o the_o antiquity_n wit_n and_o learning_n i_o have_v both_o justify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o law_n and_o object_v their_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n which_o i_o think_v they_o may_v commit_v either_o with_o the_o image_n in_o the_o church_n or_o with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n g._n h._n 11._o that_o be_v a_o truth_n to_o avouch_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v more_o gross_a than_o her_o doctrine_n howbeit_o we_o must_v confess_v her_o doctrine_n in_o many_o point_n to_o be_v very_o gross_a appear_v by_o this_o that_o the_o better_a and_o wise_a sort_n among_o themselves_o both_o in_o their_o judgement_n and_o write_n condemn_v many_o foppery_n usual_o practise_v by_o the_o people_n and_o wink_v at_o by_o their_o guide_n as_o their_o hallow_n of_o grain_n and_o medal_n and_o bead_n by_o touch_v some_o suppose_a relic_n with_o opinion_n of_o merit_n their_o pray_v to_o feign_a saint_n and_o believe_v forge_v legend_n and_o miracle_n their_o permit_v of_o public_a stew_n and_o a_o priest_n to_o keep_v his_o concubine_n under_o a_o yearly_a rent_n which_o espencaeus_fw-la wish_v be_v false_o thrust_v in_o among_o the_o grievance_n of_o germany_n their_o set_n of_o certain_a rate_n upon_o the_o most_o grievous_a sin_n before_o they_o be_v commit_v as_o appear_v in_o their_o taxa_fw-la camera_fw-la their_o allow_v of_o sanctuary_n for_o wilful_a murder_n their_o ordinary_a buy_n and_o sell_v of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n as_o a_o man_n will_v buy_v a_o horse_n in_o
hundred_o year_n for_o so_o long_o you_o say_v have_v it_o last_v whereas_o in_o truth_n if_o that_o be_v true_a where_o our_o religion_n have_v yield_v one_o rebel_n to_o speak_v within_o compass_n you_o have_v yield_v a_o thousand_o and_o if_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v induce_v man_n to_o rebellion_n sure_o in_o common_a reason_n it_o shall_v much_o rather_o do_v so_o if_o a_o contrary_a be_v once_o admit_v to_o confront_v it_o so_o that_o while_o you_o pretend_v to_o persuade_v his_o majesty_n to_o the_o safe_a course_n you_o advise_v he_o in_o all_o likelihood_n to_o the_o most_o dangerous_a whether_o his_o majesty_n then_o respect_n heaven_n or_o earth_n his_o neighbour_n abroad_o or_o his_o subject_n 〈◊〉_d home_o his_o secure_a course_n will_v be_v to_o maintain_v and_o allow_v that_o only_a religion_n which_o he_o profess_v and_o consequent_o in_o labour_v to_o draw_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a you_o can_v but_o do_v he_o very_o ill_a service_n b._n c._n 18._o but_o perhaps_o there_o be_v such_o opposition_n both_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o matter_n of_o state_n as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o ever_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o reconciliation_n at_o all_o betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o i_o humble_o pray_v your_o majesty_n to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o show_v to_o you_o what_o i_o have_v observe_v g._n h._n 18._o your_o imaginary_a possibility_n of_o reconcile_a england_n with_o rome_n be_v a_o fond_a speculation_n of_o a_o idle_a brain_n and_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o castle_n build_v in_o the_o air_n whether_o we_o consider_v as_o a_o late_a writer_n of_o our_o own_o have_v well_o observe_v irreconcili●●il●●_n the_o indisposition_n of_o the_o party_n or_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o controversy_n or_o the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o mean_n for_o the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v we_o never_o so_o peaceable_o dispose_v yet_o such_o a_o stiff_a averseness_n there_o be_v in_o the_o romanist_n that_o they_o suffer_v not_o their_o adherent_n to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o any_o religious_a exercise_n against_o which_o notwithstanding_o themselves_o can_v no_o way_n except_v they_o excommunicate_v their_o subject_n who_o travel_n or_o traffic_v into_o our_o country_n they_o straight_o charge_v they_o not_o to_o read_v or_o keep_v any_o of_o our_o book_n though_o mere_o tend_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o piety_n no_o nor_o the_o bible_n itself_o without_o special_a leave_n though_o of_o their_o own_o translation_n and_o for_o we_o they_o esteem_v no_o better_o of_o we_o then_o of_o jew_n or_o turk_n nay_o to_o the_o jew_n they_o allow_v synagogue_n within_o rome_n itself_o whereas_o we_o they_o persecute_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n and_o for_o the_o turk_n they_o hold_v their_o alcoran_n in_o nothing_o inferior_a and_o in_o some_o thing_n much_o bette●_n than_o our_o religion_n or_o our_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n no_o marvel_v then_o though_o cassander_n by_o labour_v to_o mediate_v a_o reconcilement_n howbeit_o he_o be_v set_v a_o work_n by_o ferdinand_n and_o maximilian_n both_o emperor_n have_v carry_v away_o blow_n on_o both_o side_n which_o it_o seem_v bellarmin_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 19_o chap._n of_o laik_n think_v he_o well_o deserve_v help_v to_o lay_v on_o load_n upon_o he_o the_o second_o thing_n that_o make_v we_o irreconcilable_a be_v the_o quality_n of_o our_o controversy_n they_o be_v not_o verbal_a difference_n as_o some_o will_v have_v but_o material_a and_o that_o of_o the_o high_a nature_n no_o less_o than_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n and_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o above_o all_o that_o upon_o which_o the_o rest_n depend_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n power_n in_o judge_v and_o determine_v in●alliblely_o of_o all_o controversy_n arise_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a they_o will_v ever_o while_o they_o be_v able_a without_o yield_v a_o inch_n as_o stiff_o maintain_v as_o we_o just_o oppugn_v which_o the_o late_a write_n of_o their_o jesuit_n have_v give_v we_o so_o sufficient_a occasion_n by_o advance_v and_o enlarge_n this_o power_n to_o the_o utmost_a to_o be_v confident_a of_o that_o we_o need_v make_v no_o far_o doubt_v of_o that_o matter_n the_o three_o thing_n which_o make_v we_o irreconciliable_a be_v the_o difficulty_n in_o the_o mean_n of_o reconcilement_n which_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o wise_a be_v in_o likelihood_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n or_o nothing_o but_o who_o shall_v call_v this_o council_n and_o prescribe_v the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o meeting_n and_o person_n that_o shall_v meet_v who_o shall_v sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o it_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o dispute_v and_o mean_n of_o execute_v what_o be_v determine_v we_o shall_v need_v a_o former_a council_n to_o define_v b._n c._n 19_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o breach_n have_v continue_v now_o these_o many_o year_n and_o it_o be_v much_o increase_v by_o so_o long_a continuance_n so_o that_o it_o be_v never_o great_a than_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v at_o this_o day_n nor_o never_o more_o dangerous_a to_o deal_v withal_o for_o if_o a_o man_n do_v but_o go_v about_o to_o stop_v it_o there_o arise_v present_o a_o great_a and_o fearful_a noise_n and_o roar_v of_o the_o water_n against_o he_o but_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o noise_n ought_v not_o to_o discourage_v we_o but_o rather_o to_o give_v we_o hope_v that_o though_o it_o be_v wide_a yet_o it_o be_v but_o shallow_a and_o not_o far_o from_o the_o bottom_n as_o proceed_v from_o affection_n which_o be_v sudden_a and_o violent_a and_o not_o from_o judgement_n which_o be_v quiet_a constant_a and_o always_o like_o itself_o for_o if_o a_o man_n ask_v in_o cold_a blood_n whether_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v save_v the_o most_o learned_a churchman_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o and_o if_o a_o man_n ask_v whether_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v a_o good_a subject_n the_o most_o wise_a statesman_n will_v easy_o statute_n grant_v it_o may_v we_o be_v both_o save_v then_o we_o be_v not_o divide_v in_o god_n may_v we_o be_v both_o good_a subject_n then_o we_o be_v not_o divide_v in_o the_o king_n what_o reason_n be_v there_o then_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v thus_o hot_o and_o unplacable_o divide_v g._n h._n 19_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n which_o you_o call_v a_o breach_n so_o that_o their_o strength_n be_v never_o great_a nor_o more_o dangerous_a to_o deal_v withal_o then_o at_o this_o day_n though_o the_o disciple_n of_o rome_n grieve_v and_o gnash_v their_o tooth_n at_o it_o and_o consume_v away_o to_o see_v it_o yet_o have_v we_o good_a reason_n to_o thank_v god_n for_o it_o in_o as_o much_o as_o neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o the_o pope_n neither_o rome_n nor_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n with_o all_o their_o bloody_a persecution_n their_o holy_a league_n and_o mischievous_a combination_n can_v ever_o yet_o prevail_v against_o it_o nay_o hitherto_o the_o more_o they_o have_v labour_v to_o quench_v it_o and_o trample_v it_o under_o foot_n the_o more_o have_v it_o shine_v like_o a_o bright_a torch_n and_o flourish_v as_o the_o palm_n tree_n which_o the_o more_o it_o be_v press_v down_o the_o more_o it_o spread_v their_o blood_n hitherto_o have_v prove_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o first_o christian_n may_v be_v verify_v of_o they_o they_o be_v mangle_v they_o be_v scourge_v they_o be_v stone_v they_o be_v burn_v they_o be_v multiply_v and_o because_o you_o can_v with_o all_o your_o malice_n and_o power_n and_o policy_n destroy_v it_o we_o argue_v with_o gamaliel_n that_o it_o be_v from_o god_n neither_o can_v you_o just_o call_v that_o sudden_a or_o violent_a which_o as_o yourself_o before_o confess_v have_v now_o continue_v these_o many_o year_n and_o have_v increase_v by_o continuance_n whereas_o sudden_a thing_n in_o their_o ordinary_a course_n and_o by_o discourse_n of_o reason_n last_o little_a and_o by_o continuance_n rather_o decrease_v it_o be_v proper_a only_o to_o natural_a motion_n to_o gather_v strength_n and_o fortify_v themselves_o in_o go_v and_o for_o that_o great_a roar_n of_o the_o water_n which_o you_o pretend_v though_o it_o be_v a_o noise_n fearful_a to_o you_o yet_o to_o we_o be_v it_o acceptable_a as_o be_v occasion_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o shallowness_n of_o the_o water_n themselves_o as_o from_o the_o stop_n and_o opposition_n of_o other_o and_o their_o own_o concurrence_n to_o remove_v and_o bear_v down_o by_o all_o lawful_a mean_n that_o which_o be_v oppose_v for_o the_o stop_n of_o their_o current_n but_o the_o reason_n which_o you_o add_v why_o we_o shall_v think_v they_o
shallow_a as_o proceed_v rather_o from_o affection_n then_o judgement_n be_v this_o because_o if_o a_o man_n ask_v you_o say_v in_o cold_a blood_n whether_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v save_v the_o most_o learned_a churchman_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o wherein_o if_o we_o be_v more_o charitable_a to_o you_o than_o you_o be_v to_o we_o in_o pass_v censure_n of_o damnation_n it_o shall_v in_o my_o judgement_n rather_o argue_v the_o goodness_n of_o that_o religion_n from_o whence_o such_o charity_n flow_v towards_o man_n person_n then_o be_v urge_v as_o a_o proof_n for_o the_o approbation_n of_o that_o erroneous_a doctrine_n which_o in_o itself_o it_o condemn_v the_o turk_n be_v too_o liberal_a in_o admit_v all_o religion_n to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o be_v too_o niggardly_a and_o spare_v in_o shut_v out_o all_o from_o the_o hope_n thereof_o which_o receive_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o their_o forehead_n or_o hand_n we_o desire_v to_o run_v a_o middle_a course_n betwixt_o both_o extreme_n as_o we_o shut_v out_o all_o such_o who_o direct_o deny_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n so_o do_v we_o pass_v a_o favourable_a censure_n on_o those_o who_o deny_v he_o not_o of_o malice_n but_o of_o ignorance_n and_o that_o not_o direct_o but_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n paul_n have_v in_o the_o five_o to_o the_o galatian_n if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o that_o be_v if_o a_o man_n put_v his_o trust_n in_o circumcision_n or_o in_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o christ_n though_o with_o christ_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n he_o be_v abolish_v from_o christ_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n now_o what_o confidence_n the_o romanist_n put_v in_o their_o own_o satisfaction_n for_o venial_a sin_n and_o temporal_a punishment_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n due_a to_o mortal_a their_o write_n testify_v but_o yet_o our_o assurance_n be_v that_o many_o of_o they_o when_o they_o come_v to_o make_v their_o last_o account_n betwixt_o god_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o thorough_o consider_v of_o the_o weakness_n and_o corruption_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n for_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o own_o proper_a righteousness_n and_o for_o the_o avoid_v of_o vainglory_n according_a to_o beauties_n advice_n 7._o they_o rest_v whole_o in_o the_o alone_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n renounce_v in_o particular_a that_o merit_n of_o work_n which_o their_o church_n in_o general_a for_o she_o own_o advantage_n maintain_v and_o teach_v they_o to_o maintain_v or_o last_o god_n of_o his_o graciousnesse_n may_v accept_v of_o their_o repentance_n for_o unknowen_a sin_n and_o consequent_o for_o their_o erroneous_a opinon_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o education_n they_o unwitting_o embrace_v yet_o this_o charitable_a construction_n of_o we_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o we_o either_o to_o shut_v our_o eye_n against_o a_o know_a truth_n or_o to_o open_v our_o ear_n to_o hearken_v to_o any_o motion_n of_o reconcilement_n to_o a_o know_a error_n now_o whether_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v a_o good_a subject_n whole_o submit_v himself_o to_o romish_a position_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o his_o majesty_n speech_n in_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1605_o who_o shall_v know_v what_o belong_v to_o his_o own_o state_n and_o to_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 12._o sect._n of_o this_o chapter_n a_o part_n of_o his_o majesty_n very_a word_n in_o that_o speech_n be_v these_o i_o therefore_o do_v thus_o conclude_v this_o point_n that_o as_o upon_o the_o one_o part_v many_o honest_a man_n seduce_v with_o some_o error_n of_o popery_n may_v yet_o remain_v good_a &_o faithful_a subject_n point_n so_o upon_o the_o other_o part_n none_o of_o those_o that_o true_o know_v and_o believe_v the_o whole_a ground_n and_o school_n conclusion_n of_o their_o doctrine_n can_v ever_o prove_v good_a christian_n or_o faithful_a subject_n if_o then_o we_o be_v so_o far_o divide_v both_o in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o king_n how_o can_v we_o but_o be_v utter_o divide_v in_o ourselves_o b._n c._n 20._o true_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o but_o only_o the_o violence_n of_o affection_n which_o be_v in_o a_o course_n can_v without_o some_o force_n force_n be_v stay_v the_o multitude_n do_v seldom_o or_o never_o judge_v according_a unto_o truth_n but_o according_a unto_o custom_n and_o therefore_o have_v be_v breed_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o hatred_n of_o spaniard_n and_o papist_n can_v choose_v but_o think_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o hate_v they_o still_o and_o that_o whosoever_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o catholic_a religion_n be_v their_o utter_a enemy_n and_o the_o puritanical_a preacher_n who_o can_v have_v no_o be_v in_o charity_n do_v never_o cease_v by_o speak_v falsification_n and_o slander_n to_o blow_v the_o coal_n that_o he_o may_v burn_v they_o and_o warm_v himself_o but_o if_o your_o majesty_n shall_v ever_o be_v please_v to_o command_v those_o make-bates_a to_o hold_v their_o peace_n a_o while_n and_o to_o say_v nothing_o but_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o sufficient_a authority_n before_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o admit_v a_o dominion_n conference_n of_o learned_a and_o moderate_a man_n on_o either_o side_n the_o people_n who_o be_v now_o abuse_v and_o with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n hold_v in_o extreme_a ignorance_n be_v not_o yet_o so_o uncapable_a but_o they_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o hear_v of_o the_o truth_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v not_o simple_o and_o evident_o deliver_v by_o honest_a man_n and_o then_o they_o will_v plain_o see_v that_o their_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o so_o much_o talk_v of_o be_v but_o a_o counterfeit_a light_n in_o a_o thief_n lantern_n whereby_o honest_a man_n eye_n be_v testify_v dazzle_v and_o their_o purse_n rob_v and_o it_o will_v also_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v not_o indeed_o any_o such_o chap._n irreconciliable_a opposition_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n as_o they_o that_o live_v by_o the_o schism_n do_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v there_o be_v neither_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n nor_o in_o matter_n of_o state_n g._n h._n 20._o you_o far_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v in_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o section_n that_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n arise_v rather_o from_o affection_n then_o judgement_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o multitude_n do_v seldom_o or_o never_o judge_v according_a to_o truth_n but_o according_a unto_o custom_n now_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o stand_v upon_o multitude_n and_o that_o multitude_n upon_o custom_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o shall_v be_v the_o judge_n nay_o not_o only_o your_o multitude_n but_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o your_o church_n stand_v most_o upon_o it_o if_o you_o have_v but_o look_v into_o your_o great_a 5._o cardinal_n note_n of_o your_o church_n you_o shall_v have_v find_v antiquity_n or_o custom_n to_o have_v be_v the_o second_o howbeit_o both_o 18._o acosta_n and_o 1._o xaverius_n in_o their_o several_a write_n make_v the_o indian_n stand_v upon_o their_o custom_n the_o chief_a difficulty_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o christ_n it_o be_v symmachus_n the_o pagan_n argument_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n record_v by_o 30._o s._n ambrose_n seruanda_fw-la est_fw-la tot_fw-la saeculis_fw-la fides_fw-la nostra_fw-la &_o sequendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la maiores_fw-la nostri_fw-la qui_fw-la secuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la foeliciter_fw-la suos_fw-la our_o religion_n which_o have_v now_o continue_v so_o many_o year_n be_v still_o to_o be_v retain_v and_o our_o ancestor_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v by_o we_o who_o happy_o trace_v the_o step_n of_o their_o forefather_n and_o be_v not_o this_o mr._n doctor_n own_o argument_n to_o persuade_v his_o majesty_n to_o the_o romish_a religion_n in_o the_o 2._o and_o 10._o sect._n of_o this_o chapter_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o in_o this_o place_n he_o find_v fault_n with_o those_o that_o judge_v according_a to_o custom_n and_o make_v it_o a_o popular_a error_n teach_v that_o a_o while_n and_o indeed_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o shake_v hand_n with_o rome_n she_o stand_v upon_o a_o pretend_a truth_n of_o antiquity_n but_o we_o upon_o the_o antiquity_n of_o truth_n in_o as_o much_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v not_o i_o be_o antiquity_n but_o i_o be_o truth_n and_o s._n cyprian_n his_o bless_a martyr_n antiquity_n without_o truth_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o ancient_a error_n now_o the_o reason_n you_o give_v that_o our_o
they_o be_v not_o silence_v they_o must_v say_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o sufficient_a authority_n before_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v as_o if_o our_o bishop_n be_v ignorant_a that_o it_o belong_v to_o their_o charge_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o unsound_a doctrine_n within_o their_o diocese_n and_o according_o to_o censure_v it_o or_o know_v what_o be_v their_o duty_n in_o that_o behalf_n they_o be_v more_o unwilling_a or_o unable_a to_o perform_v it_o than_o doctor_n carier_n and_o his_o college_n of_o critic_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n a_o conference_n must_v be_v have_v of_o learned_a and_o moderate_a man_n on_o either_o side_n such_o belike_o as_o yourself_o like_o metius_n suffetius_n lukewarm_a halt_v betwixt_o two_o opinion_n row_v to_o the_o shore_n and_o look_v to_o the_o sea_n hold_v with_o the_o hare_n and_o run_v with_o the_o hound_n who_o public_o pray_v for_o the_o king_n and_o private_o work_v for_o the_o pope_n true_a learning_n we_o reverence_v and_o christian_a moderation_n we_o high_o esteem_v but_o 20._o science_n false_o so_o call_v bend_v to_o the_o patronage_n of_o falsehood_n and_o neutralitie_n under_o the_o vizard_n of_o moderation_n to_o the_o reconcile_n of_o error_n to_o truth_n be_v but_o the_o abuse_n of_o fair_a and_o honourable_a title_n to_o base_a and_o malicious_a end_n which_o imputation_n you_o labour_v to_o fasten_v upon_o we_o as_o if_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o hold_v the_o people_n in_o extreme_a ignorance_n whereas_o the_o prophet_n david_n tell_v we_o that_o 105._o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o lantern_n to_o his_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o his_o path_n and_o s._n peter_n 19_o you_o have_v a_o most_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o which_o you_o do_v well_o that_o you_o take_v heed_n as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n but_o you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n hold_v man_n in_o extreme_a ignorance_n zachary_n prophesy_v of_o his_o ●onne_n the_o baptist_n that_o 79._o he_o be_v ordain_v to_o give_v light_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n to_o guide_v their_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o baptist_n himself_o of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v 9_o that_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o serve_v to_o dazzle_v man_n eye_n and_o rob_v their_o purse_n and_o no_o doubt_n have_v you_o live_v among_o the_o pharisee_n in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n or_o john_n the_o baptist_n you_o will_v have_v call_v their_o doctrine_n a_o counterfeit_a light_n in_o a_o thief_n lantern_n aswell_o as_o we_o be_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o with_o they_o and_o for_o ignorance_n i_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v it_o with_o a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n to_o god_n for_o it_o that_o a_o good_a part_n of_o our_o people_n be_v more_o expert_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v better_a able_a to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o they_o than_o many_o of_o your_o prelate_n and_o priest_n whereof_o some_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o brotherhood_n of_o ignorance_n and_o all_o at_o least_o by_o your_o practice_n acknowledge_v she_o the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o 18._o withhold_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n like_o esopes_n dog_n you_o neither_o eat_v hay_n yourselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o eat_v it_o you_o pretend_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n but_o you_o neither_o enter_v in_o yourselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v you_o neither_o read_v nor_o esteem_v the_o scripture_n yourselves_o as_o you_o ought_v nor_o suffer_v the_o people_n to_o read_v they_o but_o seal_v they_o up_o in_o a_o unknown_a language_n to_o the_o use_n of_o a_o few_o with_o who_o you_o please_v to_o dispense_v b._n c._n 21._o for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o your_o majesty_n or_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v molest_v or_o burden_a for_o the_o mainetenance_n of_o caluinisme_n doctrine_n which_o be_v as_o much_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v against_o the_o religion_n of_o rome_n and_o will_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n overthrow_v not_o only_o testify_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n save_v only_o so_o much_o as_o the_o moderation_n turk_n himself_o will_v be_v content_a to_o believe_v which_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o prove_v upon_o better_a offer_v leisure_n the_o doctrine_n of_o england_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o church_n catechism_n confirm_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o by_o your_o majesty_n edict_n wherein_o all_o englishman_n be_v you_o baptize_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v confirm_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v some_o reason_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v stand_v upon_o but_o this_o doctrine_n in_o most_o of_o the_o main_a point_n thereof_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v touch_v before_o and_o require_v a_o doctrine_n just_a treatise_n to_o set_v down_o in_o particular_a do_v much_o differ_v from_o the_o current_a opinion_n and_o catechism_n of_o caluinisme_n do_v very_o near_o agree_v with_o or_o at_o least_o not_o doctrine_n contradict_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o we_o list_v with_o prove_v patience_n to_o hear_v one_o another_o and_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o we_o be_v she_o make_v to_o be_v at_o war_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whether_o we_o will_v or_o not_o do_v rather_o arguethe_v follow_v corruption_n of_o the_o state_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v then_o be_v argue_v by_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o religion_n whereupon_o they_o stand_v and_o the_o contradiction_n of_o doctrine_n have_v follow_v the_o alteration_n of_o state_n and_o not_o the_o alteration_n of_o state_n be_v ground_v upon_o any_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n g._n h._n 21._o we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o one_o of_o the_o main_a point_n you_o drive_v at_o howbeit_o you_o seem_v only_o to_o glance_v at_o it_o in_o passage_n and_o to_o draw_v it_o on_o upon_o the_o bye_n which_o be_v to_o put_v we_o off_o from_o all_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n with_o those_o church_n who_o acknowledge_v calvin_n to_o have_v be_v a_o excellent_a instrument_n of_o god_n in_o the_o abolish_n and_o suppress_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o clear_n and_o spread_v of_o his_o truth_n that_o so_o be_v separate_v from_o they_o we_o may_v either_o stand_v single_a and_o be_v encounter_v alone_o or_o return_v again_o to_o our_o old_a bias_n and_o relapse_n upon_o rome_n and_o so_o through_o calvin_n side_n you_o strike_v at_o the_o throat_n and_o heart_n of_o our_o religion_n for_o our_o part_n we_o all_o wish_n with_o the_o reverend_a &_o learned_a ely_n prelate_n of_o our_o own_o church_n that_o you_o be_v no_o more_o papist_n than_o we_o caluinist_n no_o more_o pin_v on_o the_o pope_n sleeve_n than_o we_o on_o caluin_n who_o we_o esteem_v as_o a_o worthy_a man_n but_o a_o man_n and_o consequent_o subject_a to_o humane_a error_n and_o frailty_n we_o maintain_v nothing_o with_o he_o because_o he_o affirm_v it_o but_o because_o from_o infallible_a ground_n he_o prove_v it_o whereas_o the_o pope_n bare_a assertion_n with_o you_o be_v proof_n sufficient_a you_o be_v so_o swear_v to_o his_o word_n that_o they_o be_v of_o equal_a or_o high_a authority_n with_o you_o then_o pythagoras_n his_o precept_n with_o his_o scholar_n ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la be_v enough_o for_o your_o warrant_n but_o for_o we_o we_o embrace_v calvin_n as_o himself_o do_v author_n not_o divine_a usque_fw-la ad_fw-la arras_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o with_o divine_a he_o accord_v and_o no_o far_o this_o be_v our_o judgement_n of_o calvin_n but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o maintain_v be_v as_o much_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v against_o that_o of_o rome_n be_v a_o desperate_a assertion_n and_o such_o as_o can_v never_o be_v make_v good_a do_v all_o our_o fugitive_n lay_v their_o head_n together_o and_o be_v all_o their_o wit_n turn_v into_o one_o and_o i_o much_o marvel_v what_o you_o mean_v pretend_v so_o much_o tenderness_n of_o conscience_n and_o diligence_n in_o search_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o suffer_v your_o malice_n so_o far_o to_o prevail_v upon_o your_o judgement_n as_o to_o let_v so_o foul_a a_o blot_n so_o manifest_a a_o falsehood_n to_o drop_v from_o your_o pen_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o to_o present_v it_o to_o the_o scan_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o prince_n and_o to_o publish_v it_o to_o the_o view_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o world_n for_o if_o calvin_n
doctrine_n be_v as_o opposite_a to_o our_o religion_n as_o to_o the_o romish_a then_o must_v it_o need_v follow_v that_o either_o we_o and_o the_o romish_a agree_v in_o one_o or_o that_o we_o be_v as_o distant_a from_o caluin_n as_o caluin_n be_v from_o the_o romish_a both_o which_o to_o be_v untrue_a appear_v aswell_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o other_o romish_a writer_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o in_o his_o mandavit_fw-la bull_n against_o queen_n elizbaeth_n as_o those_o who_o they_o term_v lutheran_n who_o frankfurt_n ever_o range_v we_o among_o the_o caluinist_n as_o also_o of_o our_o own_o writer_n and_o those_o of_o foreign_a church_n by_o you_o term_v caluinistical_a because_o with_o he_o they_o join_v in_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n the_o manifold_a religion_n letter_n by_o they_o write_v and_o book_n dedicate_v to_o our_o late_a bless_a queen_n our_o bishop_n and_o noble_a man_n by_o french_a and_o helvetian_a divine_n special_o of_o zurich_n and_o basil_n testify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o then_o hold_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o they_o and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o know_v neither_o they_o nor_o we_o be_v since_o change_v save_v only_o some_o such_o neutral_n as_o yourself_o labour_v to_o draw_v we_o near_o to_o rome_n than_o they_o can_v be_v draw_v or_o the_o truth_n itself_o will_v permit_v that_o we_o shall_v among_o many_o other_o testimony_n i_o will_v only_o instance_n in_o two_o the_o one_o a_o helvetian_a touch_v our_o conformity_n with_o foreign_a reform_a church_n in_o former_a time_n the_o other_o a_o french_a man_n touch_v the_o present_a the_o helvetian_a be_v bullinger_n who_o dedicate_a his_o commentary_n upon_o daniel_n to_o horn_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n jewel_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n sand_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n parkhurst_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n and_o pilkington_n bishop_n of_o durham_n in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a profess_v he_o do_v it_o chief_o to_o this_o end_n that_o posterity_n may_v understand_v their_o indissoluble_a knot_n of_o friendship_n and_o the_o mutual_a consent_n between_o england_n and_o suisserland_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n howbeit_o they_o be_v remove_v far_o asunder_o in_o situation_n of_o place_n the_o french_a be_v peter_n moulin_n who_o in_o defence_n of_o his_o majesty_n book_n against_o coffeteau_n acknowledge_v that_o we_o have_v enough_o sufficient_a man_n of_o our_o own_o to_o defend_v the_o cause_n but_o that_o he_o undertake_v the_o work_n to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o same_o confession_n which_o his_o majesty_n have_v make_v be_v also_o they_o and_o that_o they_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v assail_v in_o his_o person_n and_o write_n but_o what_o need_v i_o stand_v upon_o the_o particular_a testimony_n of_o private_a man_n since_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n be_v extant_a to_o be_v compare_v as_o well_o in_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o harmony_n as_o in_o that_o other_o term_v the_o body_n of_o confession_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o give_v the_o reader_n some_o satisfaction_n i_o will_v set_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o point_n of_o difference_n together_o with_o caluint_a on_o the_o one_o side_n of_o it_o and_o the_o romish_a on_o the_o other_o that_o so_o we_o may_v make_v some_o estimate_n whether_o caluinisme_n be_v as_o opposite_a to_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o to_o that_o of_o rome_n now_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o will_v not_o extend_v it_o so_o wide_a as_o to_o the_o book_n and_o lecture_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o public_a professor_n the_o light_n and_o guide_v of_o our_o church_n and_o university_n nor_o yet_o contract_n and_o confine_v it_o as_o mr._n doctor_n do_v within_o the_o narrow_a compass_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o church_n catechism_n the_o book_n of_o canon_n and_o therein_o nowel_n catechism_n can._n 79._o be_v confirm_v and_o allow_v by_o public_a authority_n but_o above_o all_o i_o very_o much_o marvel_n mr._n doctor_n memory_n shall_v so_o far_o fail_v he_o as_o quite_o and_o clean_o to_o forget_v the_o book_n of_o article_n solemn_o agree_v upon_o by_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o this_o kingdom_n at_o two_o several_a meeting_n or_o convocation_n of_o they_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1562_o and_o again_o 1604_o and_o late_o again_o confirm_v by_o two_o several_a canon_n the_o 5_o and_o 36_o in_o number_n since_o himself_o subscribe_v to_o they_o at_o the_o take_n of_o his_o order_n if_o not_o of_o his_o degree_n and_o live_v a_o long_a time_n as_o chaplain_n in_o house_n with_o archbishop_n whitegift_n and_o since_o keep_v his_o ordinary_a turn_n of_o wait_v at_o court_n and_o residence_n at_o canterbury_n he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o nay_o i_o can_v show_v it_o under_o his_o own_o hand_n which_o argue_v he_o fight_v against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n that_o set_v down_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o old_a english_a and_o new_a french_a divinity_n as_o he_o call_v it_o he_o quote_v diverse_a of_o those_o article_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o beside_o profess_v himself_o so_o skilful_a in_o the_o statute_n 13._o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v that_o the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o injunction_n be_v by_o they_o aswell_o confirm_v and_o authorize_v as_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n 36._o in_o which_o article_n be_v also_o allow_v and_o ratify_v the_o second_o book_n of_o homily_n and_o holy_a order_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v doctrinal_o deliver_v in_o any_o of_o these_o may_v safe_o be_v call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o for_o the_o present_a i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o the_o book_n of_o article_n only_o and_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o canon_n and_o position_n of_o the_o tridentine_a council_n and_o catechism_n and_o for_o caluines_n doctrine_n with_o that_o special_o which_o he_o have_v deliver_v in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o christian_a institution_n here_o follow_v the_o table_n of_o difference_n b._n c._n 22._o for_o when_o the_o breach_n be_v resolve_v on_o for_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a ease_n of_o henry_n the_o viii_o and_o the_o she_o child_n of_o his_o late_a wife_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v every_o part_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n state_n contentment_n for_o which_o they_o may_v hold_v out_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o affection_n and_o study_v to_o maintain_v the_o breach_n otherwise_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o in_o the_o clearness_n of_o affection_n judgement_n it_o will_v quick_o have_v grow_v together_o again_o and_o then_o the_o author_n thereof_o must_v have_v be_v account_n exclude_v and_o give_v account_n of_o their_o practice_n g._n h._n 22_o howbeit_o henry_n the_o viii_o actual_o indeed_o make_v that_o breach_n with_o rome_n which_o continue_v at_o this_o day_n and_o be_v like_a to_o do_v till_o rome_n by_o her_o reformation_n endeavour_n to_o make_v it_o up_o yet_o they_o certain_o err_v who_o seek_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o only_o in_o he_o and_o in_o his_o time_n or_o fix_v their_o eye_n upon_o his_o person_n &_o quarrel_n look_v not_o up_o to_o the_o state_n and_o course_n of_o former_a age_n for_o as_o no_o wise_a man_n will_v assign_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n to_o some_o accident_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o last_o point_n and_o period_n of_o life_n but_o to_o some_o former_a distemper_n or_o intemperancy_n so_o the_o reason_n of_o unhorse_v the_o pope_n and_o reject_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o general_a applause_n of_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o realm_n have_v be_v so_o long_a an●_n so_o deep_o root_v in_o man_n mind_n be_v not_o to_o be_v search_v for_o in_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a proceed_n of_o henry_n the_o viii_o but_o in_o the_o ancient_a record_n and_o evidence_n of_o our_o histo●ians_n who_o all_o complain_v of_o the_o spur_n and_o gall_v and_o whip_v of_o our_o land_n by_o those_o italian_a rider_n until_o like_o balaams_n ass_n she_o turn_v again_o open_v her_o mouth_n to_o complain_v and_o be_v out_o of_o all_o hope_n of_o relief_n by_o complaint_n cast_v her_o rider_n as_o many_o witness_n we_o have_v hereof_o well_o near_o as_o writer_n since_o the_o last_o 600._o year_n as_o many_o clear_a testimony_n as_o there_o be_v leaf_n in_o mat._n paris_n the_o most_o learned_a and_o sufficient_a writer_n unless_o you_o will_v except_v william_n of_o malmesburie_n that_o those_o time_n afford_v it_o be_v a_o memorable_a speech_n of_o robert_n grosteed_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n who_o live_v 358._o year_n since_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o ix_o celestine_n the_o four_o innocent_a the_o four_o
be_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n 8._o he_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o infidel_n that_o provide_v not_o for_o those_o of_o his_o own_o household_n to_o conclude_v we_o neither_o speak_v nor_o write_v against_o lawful_a vow_n but_o the_o rashness_n of_o they_o and_o impossibility_n in_o perform_v they_o not_o against_o true_a virginity_n but_o the_o feign_a show_n of_o it_o and_o the_o prefer_v it_o by_o so_o many_o degree_n before_o the_o honourable_a estate_n of_o marriage_n not_o against_o necessary_a poverty_n but_o the_o voluntary_a choice_n of_o it_o when_o more_o good_a may_v be_v do_v by_o possess_v and_o use_v those_o mean_n god_n have_v send_v we_o not_o against_o fast_v but_o the_o pharesaicall_a use_n of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o part_v of_o divine_a worship_n not_o against_o pray_v but_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n rather_o for_o custom_n then_o for_o conscience_n rather_o by_o number_n then_o by_o weight_n in_o draw_v near_o unto_o god_n with_o our_o lip_n when_o our_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o he_o not_o against_o watch_v but_o the_o pretend_a apish_a imitation_n and_o merit_n in_o it_o not_o against_o obedience_n but_o the_o abuse_n of_o it_o in_o the_o enterprise_v of_o damnable_a and_o desperate_a attempt_n last_o not_o against_o austerity_n of_o life_n but_o incivility_n and_o that_o show_v of_o wisdom_n which_o s._n paul_n censure_v in_o the_o second_o to_o the_o col._n consist_v in_o voluntary_a religion_n and_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n and_o not_o spare_v the_o body_n you_o do_v well_o to_o add_v that_o all_o these_o be_v require_v in_o a_o monastical_a conversation_n but_o how_o they_o be_v or_o be_v perform_v god_n know_v and_o the_o world_n not_o undeserued_o suspect_v b._n c._n 26._o upon_o these_o condition_n the_o lord_n the_o commons_o and_o the_o clergy_n be_v content_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o that_o they_o do_v think_v so_o indeed_o or_o that_o they_o desire_v to_o augment_v his_o authority_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v protect_v by_o he_o &_o free_o enjoy_v those_o commodity_n which_o they_o think_v schism_n have_v bring_v unto_o they_o and_o fear_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v again_o take_v from_o they_o hence_o do_v arise_v a_o necessity_n of_o inveigh_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o against_o antichrist_n and_o babylon_n and_o the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o state_n of_o england_n insomuch_o that_o that_o clergy_n man_n be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o they_o and_o in_o their_o opinion_n most_o worthy_a of_o preferment_n that_o can_v most_o confident_o preach_v and_o write_v the_o most_o foul_a and_o monstrous_a assertion_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o false_a it_o these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v those_o temporal_a respect_n which_o will_v fain_o seem_v the_o daughter_n of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o themselves_o have_v bring_v forth_o and_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o doctrine_n when_o they_o themselves_o have_v cause_v the_o doctrine_n of_o division_n g._n h._n 26._o upon_o these_o condition_n you_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o and_o clergy_n be_v content_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereas_o yourself_o before_o confess_v that_o these_o condition_n be_v afterward_o grant_v to_o the_o clergy_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v the_o forward_a in_o persuade_v the_o king_n to_o accept_v and_o assume_v that_o title_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o book_n set_v out_o by_o the_o whole_a convocation_n of_o england_n entitle_v the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n beside_o the_o treatise_n of_o diverse_a particular_a bishop_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n as_o namely_o stephen_n gardiner_n discourse_n of_o true_a obedience_n together_o with_o bonner_n preface_n annex_v to_o it_o longelands_n sermon_n and_o tunstal_v letter_n to_o cardinal_n poole_n all_o which_o be_v extant_a to_o be_v read_v and_o see_v at_o this_o day_n and_o sure_o he_o that_o shall_v observe_v their_o vehement_a protestation_n special_o of_o gardener_n who_o i_o hold_v the_o most_o sufficient_a among_o they_o for_o learning_n and_o withal_o the_o soundness_n and_o weight_n of_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o enforce_v against_o the_o pope_n pretend_a jurisdiction_n will_v easy_o believe_v that_o they_o think_v in_o very_a deed_n as_o they_o write_v that_o their_o mind_n and_o their_o pen_n concur_v in_o one_o but_o from_o hence_o you_o say_v arise_v a_o necessity_n of_o envy_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o against_o antichrist_n and_o babylon_n as_o if_o his_o holiness_n have_v never_o be_v grace_v with_o the_o title_n of_o antichrist_n before_o henry_n assume_v his_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n nor_o rome_n call_v babylon_n before_o england_n be_v free_v from_o that_o babylonish_n captivity_n whereas_o your_o famous_a cardinal_n have_v none_o other_o proof_n from_o scripture_n that_o s._n peter_n be_v ever_o at_o rome_n but_o by_o expound_v rome_n to_o be_v the_o babylon_n from_o whence_o he_o date_v his_o first_o epistle_n and_o when_o the_o several_a mark_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v apply_v to_o any_o so_o proper_o as_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v confess_v he_o be_v injurious_o so_o style_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o can_v hardly_o imagine_v any_o so_o foul_a and_o monstrous_a assertion_n which_o some_o of_o your_o pope_n have_v not_o deserve_v even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o own_o writer_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o modest_a man_n blush_v in_o read_v and_o relate_v that_o which_o they_o blush_v not_o to_o act_v nay_o boast_a of_o be_v act_v in_o so_o much_o as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o i_o may_v confident_o affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o catalogue_n of_o emperor_n take_v in_o the_o heathenish_a among_o the_o christian_n nor_o any_o one_o succession_n of_o king_n in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o first_o creation_n of_o it_o to_o this_o present_a age_n ever_o afford_v so_o many_o monster_n of_o man_n so_o many_o incarnate_a devil_n so_o expert_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o villainy_n as_o that_o of_o your_o pope_n neither_o can_v any_o one_o king_n or_o emperor_n be_v name_v who_o some_o of_o your_o pope_n have_v not_o outstripped_n and_o what_o need_v then_o any_o imitation_n of_o your_o side_n in_o feign_v false_a assertion_n where_o true_a be_v so_o plentiful_a b._n c._n 27._o in_o all_o these_o and_o all_o other_o doctrine_n of_o division_n man_n have_v receive_v great_a countenance_n and_o encouragement_n from_o geneva_n for_o although_o m._n john_n calvin_n be_v never_o any_o good_a subject_n or_o friend_n to_o bishop_n savoy_n duke_z or_o king_n yet_o he_o do_v so_o fit_a the_o common_a people_n with_o new_a doctrine_n that_o no_o gospel_n can_v be_v so_o afford_v please_v to_o they_o nor_o so_o light_a some_o as_o he_o for_o find_v geneva_n to_o be_v fall_v out_o both_o with_o their_o bishop_n who_o be_v their_o ancient_a prince_n and_o their_o duke_n to_o who_o they_o grenoble_n pretend_v against_o their_o bishop_n and_o to_o be_v all_o in_o a_o combustion_n among_o themselves_o for_o want_v of_o government_n although_o he_o be_v then_o a_o stranger_n and_o a_o very_a apostate_n young_a man_n of_o some_o six_o and_o twenty_o or_o seven_o and_o twenty_o year_n old_a at_o the_o most_o yet_o he_o think_v good_a upon_o the_o opportunity_n to_o give_v the_o venture_n and_o to_o step_v in_o himself_o to_o be_v founder_n of_o a_o new_a church_n and_o state_n among_o they_o and_o for_o that_o purpose_n he_o method_n find_v they_o such_o a_o catechism_n as_o they_o may_v easy_o contemn_v all_o ancient_a learning_n and_o authority_n and_o save_v themselves_o by_o a_o strong_a fancy_n which_o he_o call_v far_o faith_n and_o this_o please_v the_o burgher_n of_o geneva_n so_o well_o that_o they_o call_v a_o meeting_n and_o cause_v all_o the_o citizen_n to_o swear_v that_o that_o catechism_n be_v true_a and_o all_o himself_o popery_n false_a as_o may_v appear_v in_o calvin_n life_n write_v by_o beza_n and_o prefix_v to_o his_o epistle_n and_o although_o the_o ministerial_a presbytery_n of_o geneva_n have_v lose_v much_o of_o m._n calvin_n greatness_n yet_o the_o city_n have_v have_v the_o governor_n fortune_n ever_o since_o by_o the_o help_n of_o their_o neighbour_n to_o hold_v out_o against_o their_o bishop_n and_o the_o duke_n and_o all_o their_o ancient_a governor_n g._n h._n 27._o you_o pass_v on_o in_o this_o section_n and_o the_o next_o to_o pass_v your_o censure_n upon_o geneva_n and_o calvin_n in_o as_o much_o as_o from_o they_o we_o have_v receive_v great_a countenance_n and_o encouragement_n whereas_o neither_o geneva_n nor_o calvin_n be_v
all_o you_o come_v to_o the_o subject_n but_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o romanist_n i_o doubt_v much_o whether_o he_o shall_v long_o sit_v there_o and_o how_o he_o command_v all_o well_o appear_v by_o their_o refusal_n to_o take_v those_o lawful_a oath_n which_o he_o impose_v now_o for_o the_o subject_n you_o begin_v first_o with_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o descend_v to_o the_o commons_o conclude_v last_o with_o the_o clergy_n and_o sing_v they_o several_o a_o siren_n song_n that_o so_o be_v lull_v asleep_a the_o common_a ship_n they_o be_v carry_v in_o may_v dash_v upon_o the_o rock_n of_o rome_n b._n c._n 39_o for_o i_o own_o part_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o my_o duty_n and_o conscience_n i_o have_v consider_v of_o all_o there_o state_n and_o can_v resolve_v myself_o that_o i_o have_v not_o prejudice_v the_o state_n of_o any_o good_a subject_n of_o you_o but_o my_o own_o in_o come_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o first_o for_o your_o lord_n and_o noble_n it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o of_o their_o ancestor_n be_v allow_v a_o very_a good_a share_n in_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o shisme_n begin_v &_o therefore_o it_o concern_v they_o in_o reason_n of_o state_n to_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o division_n but_o i_o think_v there_o be_v very_o few_o in_o england_n either_o lord_n or_o other_o now_o possess_v of_o abbey_n land_n which_o have_v not_o pay_v well_o for_o they_o and_o may_v aswell_o possess_v they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o schism_n and_o there_o be_v a_o declaration_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o that_o purpose_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n so_o that_o now_o there_o be_v no_o need_n at_o all_o to_o preach_v against_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n nor_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o the_o rest_n of_o popery_n that_o build_v church_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o help_v the_o hugonote_n of_o france_n to_o pull_v they_o down_o g._n h._n 39_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o deep_a study_n and_o serious_a consideration_n of_o all_o state_n at_o length_n you_o resolve_v as_o from_o the_o oracle_n that_o you_o have_v prejudice_v none_o in_o play_v the_o turnecoate_n but_o yourself_o and_o sure_o i_o be_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n there_o be_v none_o as_o i_o hope_v so_o unwise_a as_o to_o be_v turn_v by_o you_o now_o in_o take_v this_o survey_n you_o begin_v with_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v allow_v a_o very_a good_a share_n you_o will_v say_v a_o great_a in_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o they_o will_v be_v so_o good_a as_o to_o side_n with_o the_o pope_n they_o shall_v both_o enjoy_v their_o religion_n and_o keep_v their_o possession_n as_o now_o in_o this_o religion_n they_o do_v so_o we_o see_v you_o will_v juggle_v at_o fast_o and_o loose_a play_v at_o small_a game_n rather_o than_o sit_v out_o and_o become_v all_o unto_o all_o that_o you_o may_v win_v some_o though_o in_o another_o sense_n than_o s._n paul_n both_o mean_v and_o practise_v it_o and_o whereas_o you_o will_v salve_v the_o matter_n by_o th●ir_n pay_v for_o those_o possession_n that_o shift_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n for_o queen_n mary_n day_n when_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v both_o unsold_a and_o unbought_a otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o first_o share_n by_o your_o opinion_n that_o abbey_n land_n may_v be_v aswell_o possess_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o schism_n as_o you_o be_v please_v to_o call_v it_o it_o seem_v you_o have_v see_v the_o motive_n persuade_v to_o a_o dispensation_n in_o that_o behalf_n collect_v and_o reduce_v into_o write_v in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o queen_n mary_n reign_n the_o original_n of_o which_o among_o other_o authentic_a remembrance_n of_o that_o time_n be_v preserve_v in_o the_o office_n of_o his_o majesty_n paper_n which_o because_o i_o very_o think_v it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o declaration_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o and_o a_o principal_a inducement_n of_o the_o statute_n make_v the_o same_o year_n in_o confirmation_n thereof_o and_o for_o that_o also_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v not_o any_o where_o public_o to_o be_v find_v i_o will_v here_o insert_v anno_fw-la dom._n 1554._o qvod_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la iusto_fw-la titulo_fw-la iuxta_fw-la leges_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la existentes_fw-la habent_fw-la aliquas_fw-la possessiones_fw-la terras_fw-la sive_fw-la tenementa_fw-la monasteriorum_fw-la prioratuum_fw-la episcopatuum_fw-la collegiorum_fw-la cantariarum_fw-la obituum_fw-la etc._n etc._n sive_fw-la eadem_fw-la pecunijs_fw-la suis_fw-la perquisiverunt_fw-la sive_fw-la per_fw-la donationem_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la mutationem_fw-la sive_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la legitimo_fw-la quocunque_fw-la in_fw-la sua_fw-la possessione_n huiusmodi_fw-la remanere_fw-la possint_fw-la &_o valeant_fw-la &_o easdem_fw-la svas_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ratas_fw-la &_o confirmatas_fw-la sibi_fw-la habere_fw-la ex_fw-la confirmatione_fw-la &_o dispensatione_fw-la sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la causae_fw-la &_o rationes_fw-la quare_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la dispensationes_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la &_o conscientia_fw-la rectè_fw-la concedi_fw-la possint_fw-la 1_o status_fw-la coronae_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la bene_fw-la sustineri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la regat_fw-la &_o gubernet_fw-la si_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ab_fw-la illa_fw-la separentur_fw-la quod_fw-la hodie_fw-la maxima_fw-la pars_fw-la possessionum_fw-la coronae_fw-la sit_fw-la ex_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terris_fw-la &_o possessionibus_fw-la 2_o complurimi_fw-la homines_fw-la pecuniis_fw-la suis_fw-la acquisiverunt_fw-la ingentes_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la portiones_fw-la à_fw-la serenissimis_fw-la regibus_fw-la henrico_n viii_o &_o edwardo_n vi_o qui_fw-fr per_fw-la svas_fw-la litteras_fw-la patentes_fw-la easdem_fw-la terras_fw-la warrantizaverunt_fw-la quibus_fw-la terris_fw-la &_o poss●ssionibus_fw-la sipossessores_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la nunc_fw-la privarentur_fw-la rex_fw-la teneretur_fw-la rependere_fw-la pecunias_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la part●_n expositas_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o tantarum_fw-la summarum_fw-la vim_o &_o mol●m_o seize_v extenderent_fw-la ut_fw-la d_o corona_n difficillimè_fw-la restitui_fw-la possent_fw-la 3_o magnates_fw-la &_o nobiles_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la quorum_fw-la plerique_fw-la vendiderunt_fw-la &_o alianaverunt_fw-la antiquas_fw-la svas_fw-la haereditarias_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ut_fw-la have_v novas_fw-la obtinerent_fw-la &_o in_o svo_fw-la statu_fw-la vivere_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la si_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la auferantur_fw-la 4_o acquisitores_fw-la vel_fw-la possessores_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la &_o possessionum_fw-la propterea_fw-la quod_fw-la easdem_fw-la habuerunt_fw-la ex_fw-la iusto_fw-la titulo_fw-la iuxta_fw-la ordinem_fw-la regum_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la habebant_fw-la &_o etiamnum_fw-la habent_fw-la bonam_fw-la fidem_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la obtinendis_fw-la 5_o possessio_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la adeò_fw-la est_fw-la communis_fw-la cuique_fw-la statui_fw-la &_o ordini_fw-la hominum_fw-la civitatibusque_fw-la collegiis_fw-la &_o incorporationibus_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la tollantur_fw-la &_o auferantur_fw-la subitam_fw-la quandam_fw-la metamorphosin_n singulorum_fw-la statuum_fw-la &_o magnam_fw-la omnis_fw-la ordinis_fw-la confusionem_fw-la in_o universo_fw-la regno_fw-la hinc_fw-la indesequi_fw-la necesse_fw-la sit_fw-la 6_o cum_fw-la bona_fw-la &_o possessiones_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la canonum_fw-la pro_fw-la redemptione_n captivorum_fw-la alienari_fw-la possint_fw-la idque_fw-la per_fw-la illam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la solam_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la illae_fw-la possessiones_fw-la pertinebant_fw-la aequum_fw-la est_fw-la dispensari_fw-la pro_fw-la continuatione_fw-la possessionis_fw-la iam_fw-la acquisitae_fw-la propter_fw-la tantum_fw-la bonum_fw-la publicae_fw-la concordiae_fw-la &_o unitatis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ac_fw-la praeseruatione_fw-la istius_fw-la status_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o anima_fw-la that_o all_o such_o as_o by_o just_a title_n according_a to_o the_o law_n or_o statute_n of_o this_o realm_n for_o the_o time_n be_v have_v any_o possession_n land_n or_o tenement_n late_o belong_v to_o monastery_n priory_n bishopricke_n college_n chantery_n obite_n etc._n etc._n whether_o they_o have_v purchase_v they_o for_o their_o money_n or_o be_v come_v to_o possess_v they_o by_o gift_n grant_v exchange_n or_o by_o any_o other_o legal_a mean_n whatsoever_o may_v retain_v and_o keep_v the_o same_o in_o their_o possession_n and_o have_v the_o same_o ratify_v and_o establish_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o confirmation_n and_o dispensation_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a cause_n and_o reason_n why_o such_o dispensation_n may_v be_v just_o grant_v with_o honour_n and_o conscience_n 1_o the_o state_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n can_v be_v well_o sustain_v to_o govern_v and_o rule_v with_o honour_n if_o such_o possession_n be_v take_v from_o it_o for_o at_o this_o day_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o crown_n consist_v of_o such_o land_n and_o possession_n 2_o very_o many_o man_n have_v with_o their_o money_n buy_v and_o purchase_v great_a portion_n of_o those_o land_n from_o the_o most_o excellent_a
the_o rich_a abbey_n yet_o be_v they_o as_o much_o burden_a with_o the_o poor_a friary_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o help_v they_o but_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v common_o say_v of_o their_o assist_v at_o funeral_n vbi_fw-la cadaver_fw-la ib_fw-la coruus_fw-la but_o they_o be_v all_o you_o say_v mundo_fw-la mor●ui_fw-la use_v ●_o more_o but_o for_o their_o food_n and_o regular_a apparel_n and_o turn_v the_o residue_n to_o pious_a or_o charitable_a or_o public_a use_n but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o many_o time_n they_o enrich_v and_o advance_v there_o family_n as_o much_o as_o any_o lay_v man_n nay_o which_o be_v worse_o usual_o they_o spend_v the_o residue_n upon_o their_o game_n and_o luxury_n and_o their_o live_a exchequer_n be_v rather_o for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n so_o that_o the_o multitude_n of_o such_o clergy_n man_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o provision_n may_v well_o be_v object_v by_o wise_a man_n without_o envy_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o venetian_n in_o the_o last_o quarrel_n between_o they_o and_o the_o pope_n if_o their_o good_n and_o person_n be_v still_o as_o they_o have_v be_v hitherto_o exempt_v from_o secular_a jurisdiction_n and_o public_a service_n of_o the_o state_n for_o the_o prevention_n of_o which_o mischief_n be_v the_o statute_n of_o mortmain_n for_o the_o lessen_v of_o these_o mundo_fw-la mortui_fw-la make_v by_o edward_n the_o first_o and_o confirm_v by_o all_o his_o successor_n so_o that_o upon_o due_a and_o true_a examination_n the_o commons_o be_v find_v to_o loose_v nothing_o but_o rather_o gain_v much_o by_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o separation_n from_o rome_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o yet_o be_v it_o a_o poor_a bargain_n for_o a_o man_n to_o win_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o loose_v his_o own_o soul_n b._n c._n 42._o and_o as_o for_o liberty_n they_o be_v indeed_o free_v from_o the_o possibility_n of_o go_v to_o shrift_n that_o be_v of_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o god_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o catholic_a priest_n and_o receive_v comfort_n and_o counsel_n against_o their_o sin_n from_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o same_o priest_n which_o duty_n be_v require_v of_o catholic_a people_n but_o only_o once_o in_o the_o year_n but_o perform_v by_o they_o with_o great_a comfort_n and_o edification_n very_o often_o so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v see_v and_o wonder_v to_o see_v many_o so_o hundred_o at_o one_o altar_n to_o communicate_v every_o sunday_n with_o great_a devotion_n and_o light_o no_o day_n pass_v but_o diverse_a do_v confess_v be_v absolve_v and_o receive_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o poor_a commons_o in_o england_n be_v free_v from_o this_o comfort_n neither_o be_v it_o possible_a unless_o their_o minister_n have_v the_o seal_n of_o secrecy_n for_o they_o to_o use_v it_o and_o what_o be_v the_o liberty_n that_o they_o have_v in_o stead_n thereof_o sure_o the_o servant_n have_v great_a liberty_n against_o their_o master_n by_o this_o mean_n and_o the_o child_n against_o their_o parent_n and_o the_o people_n against_o their_o prelate_n and_o the_o subject_n against_o their_o king_n and_o all_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v against_o their_o own_o good_a and_o the_o common_a salvation_n for_o rebellion_n without_o the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n neither_o can_v inferior_n be_v keep_v in_o awe_n but_o by_o the_o gallows_n which_o will_v not_o save_v they_o from_o hell_n nor_o superior_n be_v ever_o tell_v of_o their_o error_n but_o by_o rebellion_n which_o will_v not_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n these_o and_o such_o like_v be_v the_o liberty_n that_o both_o prince_n and_o people_n do_v enjoy_v by_o the_o want_n of_o confession_n and_o of_o catholic_a religion_n g._n h._n 42._o we_o willing_o acknowledge_v with_o s._n paul_n that_o 18._o to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v commit_v the_o ministry_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o the_o k●ys_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o open_v and_o shut_v as_o they_o see_v cause_n and_o therefore_o in_o their_o ordination_n have_v our_o church_n ordain_v the_o bishop_n to_o use_v these_o word_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n thou_o do_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n thou_o do_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v &_o consequent_o if_o the_o power_n of_o absolution_n be_v give_v in_o these_o word_n then_o be_v it_o give_v &_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o as_o for_o the_o people_n they_o stand_v bind_v as_o often_o as_o they_o meet_v in_o their_o solemn_a assembly_n to_o a_o public_a and_o general_a confession_n howbeit_o they_o be_v indeed_o free_v from_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o which_o we_o call_v auricular_a though_o not_o from_o the_o possibility_n as_o you_o false_o pretend_v for_o as_o we_o enforce_v none_o if_o they_o come_v not_o as_o know_v that_o force_n may_v work_v upon_o the_o body_n but_o never_o upon_o the_o will_n so_o we_o exclude_v none_o if_o th●y_v come_v with_o a_o true_a penitent_a heart_n or_o out_o of_o the_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n either_o to_o seek_v counsel_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o quality_n and_o quantity_n of_o their_o sin_n or_o comfort_n against_o despair_n for_o sin_n know_v and_o acknowledge_v in_o this_o case_n the_o only_o impart_v of_o a_o man_n mind_n to_o a_o trusty_a friend_n like_o the_o open_n of_o a_o feastered_a sore_n can_v but_o bring_v content_a to_o a_o soul_n so_o anguish_v and_o perplex_v but_o much_o more_o if_o the_o ulcer_n be_v disclose_v to_o a_o skilful_a and_o faithful_a pastor_n of_o the_o soul_n who_o be_v no_o less_o able_a than_o willing_a aswell_o to_o understand_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o disease_n as_o by_o warrant_n of_o divine_a ordinance_n to_o apply_v the_o remedy_n and_o sure_o i_o see_v not_o but_o the_o minister_n stand_v in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n as_o his_o ambassador_n and_o pronounce_v absolution_n upon_o humble_a and_o hearty_a repentance_n as_o from_o god_n it_o shall_v prove_v a_o marvelous_a great_a ease_n and_o settlement_n to_o a_o poor_a distract_a and_o distress_a conscience_n in_o which_o regard_n our_o church_n have_v well_o ordain_v in_o one_o of_o the_o exhortation_n before_o the_o communion_n that_o if_o any_o of_o the_o congregation_n be_v trouble_v with_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o he_o can_v quiet_v his_o conscience_n but_o require_v further_a comfort_n and_o counsel_n that_o he_o repair_v either_o to_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o own_o parish_n or_o some_o other_o discreet_a and_o learned_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o open_v his_o grief_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v such_o ghostly_a counsel_n advice_n and_o comfort_n as_o his_o conscience_n may_v be_v releive_v and_o that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n word_n he_o may_v receive_v comfort_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o absolution_n to_o the_o quiet_v of_o his_o conscience_n and_o avoid_v of_o all_o scruple_n and_o doubtfulness_n and_o in_o the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a if_o he_o feel_v his_o conscience_n trouble_v with_o any_o weighty_a matter_n he_o be_v will_v to_o make_v a_o special_a confession_n and_o the_o minister_n thereupon_o to_o absolve_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v a_o absolution_n only_a declaratorie_n conditional_a and_o ministerial_a but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o content_a herewith_o challenge_v to_o herself_o herein_o a_o power_n 2._o judicial_a which_o be_v in_o truth_n individual_o annex_v to_o the_o person_n and_o office_n of_o he_o who_o be_v judge_n both_o of_o quick_a and_o dead_a this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o primitive_a writer_n touch_v this_o point_n and_o i_o can_v but_o wonder_v that_o mr._n doctor_n so_o long_o a_o church_n man_n of_o such_o eminent_a place_n among_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o ignorant_a thereof_o as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o people_n with_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o possibility_n of_o confess_v themselves_o whereas_o 129._o mr._n casaubon_n a_o stranger_n in_o comparison_n can_v inform_v he_o that_o the_o rigorous_a necessity_n of_o confession_n enjoin_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o church_n of_o england_n think_v fit_a upon_o just_a reason_n to_o moderate_v and_o qualify_v but_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o she_o never_o do_v whole_o annul_v it_o nor_o now_o do_v simple_o condemn_v it_o and_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o in_o foreign_a country_n which_o mr._n doctor_n so_o much_o boast_v of_o we_o be_v not_o all_o such_o stranger_n in_o those_o part_n but_o some_o other_o have_v aswell_o be_v acquaint_v with_o their_o great_a devotion_n in_o their_o
he_o whereas_o we_o every_o where_o teach_v with_o s._n peter_n that_o as_o 20._o noe_o prophecie-in_a the_o scripture_n be_v of_o private_a motion_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o of_o private_a interpretation_n the_o original_a word_n signify_v both_o we_o can_v take_v from_o any_o christian_a man_n in_o expound_v of_o scripture_n a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n in_o weigh_v the_o drift_n of_o the_o text_n and_o confer_v it_o with_o other_o passage_n of_o like_a nature_n though_o to_o the_o guide_v of_o the_o church_n and_o pastor_n of_o man_n soul_n we_o reserve_v the_o judgement_n of_o direction_n but_o the_o judgement_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o representative_a church_n itself_o assemble_v in_o synod_n for_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o people_n be_v in_o this_o case_n subject_n to_o the_o prophet_n who_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n so_o 33._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n if_o not_o to_o convince_v the_o conscience_n at_o leastwise_o to_o impose_v silence_n for_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o confusion_n but_o of_o peace_n and_o they_o which_o think_v otherwise_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o think_v of_o they_o that_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n they_o have_v not_o know_v i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o his_o majesty_n most_o grave_a and_o godly_a advice_n 10._o when_o you_o read_v the_o scripture_n read_v it_o with_o a_o sanctify_a and_o chaste_a heart_n admire_v reverent_o such_o obscure_a plase_n as_o you_o understand_v not_o blame_v only_o your_o own_o capacity_n read_v with_o delight_n the_o plain_a place_n and_o study_v careful_o to_o understand_v those_o that_o be_v somewhat_o difficile_a press_v to_o be_v a_o good_a textuary_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v ●ever_o the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o itself_o but_o press_v not_o curious_o to_o seek_v out_o far_o than_o be_v contain_v therein_o for_o that_o be_v over_o unmannerly_a a_o presumption_n to_o strive_v to_o be_v further_o upon_o god_n secret_n than_o he_o have_v will_v be_v for_o what_o he_o think_v needful_a for_o we_o to_o know_v that_o have_v he_o reveal_v there_o and_o delight_v most_o in_o read_v such_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o may_v best_o serve_v for_o your_o instruction_n in_o your_o call_n ●_o reject_v foolish_a curiosity_n upon_o genealogy_n and_o contention_n which_o be_v but_o vain_a and_o profit_v not_o as_o paul_n say_v if_o these_o than_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o you_o call_v caluinisme_n maintain_v aswell_o by_o the_o pen_n as_o the_o tongue_n of_o those_o churchman_n who_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a and_o in_o the_o most_o eminent_a place_n of_o the_o church_n there_o will_v easy_o appear_v a_o reason_n to_o the_o parliament_n if_o it_o be_v demand_v why_o so_o necessary_a a_o party_n as_o the_o clergy_n shall_v at_o leastwise_o peaceable_o enjoy_v that_o allowance_n which_o they_o have_v allot_v by_o god_n ordinance_n the_o piety_n of_o devout_a mind_n and_o the_o ancient_a constitution_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o sure_o we_o be_v that_o a_o great_a deal_n less_o reason_n there_o be_v of_o maintain_v so_o chargeable_a a_o clergy_n in_o the_o roman_a hierarchy_n where_o the_o pope_n plenary_a indulgence_n may_v in_o a_o trice_n effectuate_v that_o about_o which_o they_o make_v so_o much_o a_o do_v but_o at_o length_n the_o ass_n ear_n appear_v through_o the_o lion_n skin_n before_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o in_o general_a that_o those_o opinion_n forge_v for_o the_o most_o part_n out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n be_v too_o much_o favour_v &_o maintain_v by_o clergy_n man_n themselves_o here_o he_o come_v at_o length_n to_o open_v his_o spleen_n &_o tell_v we_o in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o clergy_n man_n he_o mean_v be_v such_o who_o can_v be_v content_a to_o be_v lord_n and_o to_o go_v in_o rochets_fw-mi be_v indeed_o the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o clergy_n now_o have_v the_o same_o man_n who_o long_o since_o do_v smell_v his_o hypocrisy_n and_o inclination_n towards_o rome_n favour_v dr._n carrier_n popish_a doctrine_n and_o design_n or_o endeavour_v to_o have_v put_v he_o in_o a_o rochet_n and_o to_o have_v make_v he_o a_o lord_n whereof_o he_o think_v himself_o worthy_a though_o no_o man_n else_o do_v they_o have_v doubtless_o be_v in_o his_o account_n the_o clergy_n best_o friend_n but_o for_o that_o they_o discover_v and_o discountenance_v his_o sly_a purpose_n and_o practice_n they_o be_v now_o become_v the_o great_a enemy_n the_o clergy_n have_v they_o be_v therefore_o become_v enemy_n because_o they_o tell_v the_o truth_n yet_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v to_o the_o clergy_n who_o they_o love_v and_o tender_a as_o their_o brethren_n sure_o i_o be_o they_o have_v prove_v themselves_o more_o loyal_a to_o his_o majesty_n and_o more_o faithful_a to_o the_o state_n more_o diligent_a in_o their_o call_n and_o more_o unblameable_a in_o their_o way_n than_o the_o accuser_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n full_a of_o commiseration_n and_o compassion_n to_o see_v that_o by_o these_o false_a and_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o mutinous_a and_o discontent_a person_n the_o devil_n the_o father_n of_o these_o and_o all_o other_o lie_v do_v daily_o take_v possession_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o some_o of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n both_o of_o the_o noble_n and_o commons_o but_o another_o sort_n of_o clergy_n man_n you_o say_v there_o be_v good_a scholar_n and_o temperate_a man_n who_o can_v but_o in_o their_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n these_o that_o you_o may_v the_o better_o satisfy_v you_o desire_v two_o thing_n and_o by_o way_n of_o counterchange_n or_o retribution_n promise_v three_o have_v assurance_n as_o you_o pretend_v from_o some_o of_o the_o great_a the_o first_o thing_n you_o desire_v be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rom●s_n supremacy_n in_o england_n which_o you_o vail_v under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o subordination_n of_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n unto_o that_o church_n by_o who_o authority_n all_o other_o church_n in_o england_n at_o first_o be_v and_o still_o be_v subordinate_a unto_o canterbury_n whe●ther_o rome_n may_v proper_o be_v call_v the_o mother_n church_n of_o england_n i_o have_v already_o in_o another_o place_n consider_v but_o undoubted_o as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v she_o be_v become_v unto_o we_o worse_o than_o a_o stepmother_n we_o can_v in_o common_a reason_n entertain_v un●on_n with_o she_o much_o less_o acknowledge_v subjection_n unto_o she_o for_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o the_o head_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o popery_n will_v be_v long_o behind_o no_o no_o if_o that_o one_o po●nt_n be_v once_o yield_v unto_o all_o the_o rest_n controverse_v between_o we_o and_o they_o will_v quick_o follow_v after_o as_o a_o necessary_a train_n the_o friar_n in_o chaucer_n will_v have_v nothing_o be_v kill_v for_o his_o sake_n only_o he_o desire_v the_o liver_n of_o the_o capon_n and_o the_o brain_n of_o the_o pig_n so_o the_o pope_n will_v be_v content_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o innovation_n in_o england_n upon_o condition_n his_o supremacy_n and_o the_o masse●_n the_o second_o thing_n you_o desire_v be_v readmit_v upon_o which_o two_o in_o a_o manner_n the_o whole_a frame_n of_o popery_n be_v build_v and_o therefore_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o france_n not_o without_o good_a reason_n in_o my_o judgement_n such_o as_o forsake_v the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o their_o profession_n be_v bind_v before_o they_o be_v admit_v into_o their_o society_n public_o in_o the_o congregation_n as_o to_o renounce_v the_o error_n of_o that_o church_n in_o general_a so_o in_o special_a and_o by_o name_n to_o abjure_v these_o two_o the_o usurp_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o late_a declaration_n of_o the_o admittance_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o candale_n into_o their_o church_n in_o january_n last_o he_o be_v son_n and_o heir_n to_o the_o duke_n d'espernon_o a_o chief_a patron_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o faction_n and_o the_o lord_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v style_v in_o the_o declaration_n print_v at_o rochel_n 1616_o prince_n of_o busch_n duke_n and_o peer_n of_o france_n governor_n and_o lieutenant_n general_a for_o the_o king_n in_o the_o province_n of_o xaintong●_n a●goulmois_n high_a and_o low_a limosin_n principal_a gentleman_n of_o the_o king_n chamber_n in_o this_o declaration_n he_o also_o protest_v before_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n and_o judge_v of_o soul_n that_o his_o change_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o motion_n of_o fl●sh_n and_o blood_n o●_n from_o worldly_a respect_n but_o from_o the_o mere_a sense_n of_o conscience_n but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o purpose_n the_o latter_a of_o
stand_v between_o we_o savour_v not_o of_o a_o jesuit_n spirit_n we_o for_o our_o part_n free_o profess_v as_o mr_n casaubon_n do_v in_o his_o majesty_n name_n let_v they_o in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o perform_v it_o offer_v we_o such_o a_o peace_n of_o which_o it_o may_v be_v say_v peace_n &_o truth_n have_v kiss_v each_o other_o and_o the_o controversy_n be_v at_o a_o end_n let_v they_o sever_v humane_a ordinance_n from_o divine_a superstitious_a from_o godly_a new_a from_o ancient_a needless_a from_o necessary_a i_o say_v again_o say_v he_o and_o with_o as_o loud_a a_o cry_n and_o much_o earnestness_n as_o may_v be_v i_o proclaim_v it_o that_o all_o man_n may_v hear_v i_o for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v his_o majesty_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o controversy_n be_v at_o a_o end_n his_o majesty_n intent_n and_o full_a resolution_n be_v that_o they_o in_o vain_a talk_n or_o think_v of_o peace_n who_o sunder_o that_o heavenly_a yoke_n of_o unity_n and_o verity_n but_o say_v he_o in_o conclusion_n speak_v to_o the_o romanist_n their_o purpose_n be_v constant_o to_o maintain_v all_o they_o hold_v not_o to_o reconcile_v the_o mind_n of_o well_o dispose_v person_n by_o the_o reformation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v amiss_o in_o which_o purpose_n as_o long_o as_o they_o shall_v persist_v his_o majesty_n profess_v once_o for_o all_o that_o he_o will_v entertain_v no_o society_n no_o communion_n at_o all_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o this_o case_n we_o stick_v not_o to_o profess_v with_o nazianzen_n that_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o holy_a war_n in_o which_o who_o so_o die_v shall_v undoubted_o obtain_v of_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n a_o plenary_a indulgence_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o ●ith_n hillary_n amiable_a be_v the_o name_n of_o peace_n and_o lovely_a the_o opinion_n of_o unity_n but_o who_o doubt_v that_o to_o be_v the_o only_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o peace_n of_o christ_n and_o last_o with_o cyprian_a he_o be_v not_o reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o gospel_n now_o because_o m._n doctor_n will_v persuade_v the_o ●orld_n and_o his_o majesty_n himself_o that_o at_o his_o first_o entrance_n into_o this_o kingdom_n he_o be_v more_o inclineable_a to_o reconcilement_n and_o labour_v by_o promise_a honour_n and_o riches_n and_o security_n to_o reduce_v he_o again_o to_o the_o same_o pretend_a inclination_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o beside_o that_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o this_o point_n in_o diverse_a part_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n with_o his_o majesty_n protestation_n even_o while_o matter_n be_v yet_o in_o a_o mammer_v make_v to_o watson_n as_o himself_o confess_v to_o the_o late_a earl_n of_o northampton_n 115._o that_o all_o the_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n shall_v not_o induce_v he_o to_o change_v any_o jot_n of_o his_o profession_n which_o be_v the_o pasture_n of_o his_o soul_n &_o earnest_n of_o his_o eternal_a inheritance_n and_o as_o he_o thus_o protest_v at_o his_o first_o entrance_n so_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o one_o of_o his_o last_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n he_o show_v himself_o in_o this_o point_n ever_o like_o himself_o 1610_o i_o be_o now_o out_o of_o conscience_n and_o for_o security_n say_v he_o not_o to_o forget_v religion_n i_o speak_v to_o you_o last_o as_o a_o prophet_n that_o it_o be_v likely_a the_o papist_n have_v some_o new_a plot_n in_o hand_n now_o you_o see_v it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o i_o will_v let_v you_o know_v this_o much_o their_o aim_n be_v not_o at_o iu_o he_o alone_o but_o at_o other_o prince_n to_o whereof_o i_o assure_v you_o i_o be_v one_o look_v that_o these_o weed_n do_v not_o overgrow_v the_o corn_n that_o papistry_n be_v not_o increase_v by_o one_o thing_n too_o much_o use_v among_o they_o they_o send_v out_o their_o kinsman_n child_n and_o servant_n to_o douai_n and_o such_o like_a place_n these_o after_o they_o have_v be_v there_o nourish_v come_v daily_o over_o and_o with_o their_o poison_n infect_v other_o this_o one_o day_n will_v make_v you_o smart_n if_o it_o be_v not_o prevent_v and_o i_o pray_v god_n his_o majesty_n do_v not_o prove_v as_o true_a a_o prophet_n in_o this_o latter_a as_o the_o success_n show_v he_o in_o the_o former_a how_o soever_o it_o suffice_v to_o show_v his_o majesty_n aversenes_n from_o all_o manner_n of_o reconcilement_n thing_n stand_v in_o the_o term_n they_o do_v nay_o m._n doctor_n himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o casaubon_n write_v since_o his_o go_v over_o profess_v that_o a●●edere_fw-la except_o it_o be_v expect_v from_o his_o majesty_n that_o he_o shall_v in_o a_o manner_n proclaim_v to_o the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o that_o religion_n he_o see_v not_o how_o in_o so_o great_a danger_n and_o just_a anger_n he_o can_v possible_o draw_v near_o to_o they_o who_o well_o deser●ed_v the_o anger_n by_o procure_v the_o danger_n m._n doctor_n than_o may_v well_o have_v spare_v his_o pain_n of_o write_v to_o his_o majesty_n to_o that_o purpose_n consider_v withal_o he_o have_v by_o his_o own_o acknowledgement_n receive_v full_a answer_n from_o m_n casuabon_n that_o his_o majesties_n settle_a determination_n be_v as_o he_o have_v before_o signify_v to_o cardinal_n perron_n not_o at_o all_o to_o shake_v hand_n with_o rome_n while_o her_o whordome_n and_o withcraft_n yet_o remain_v in_o such_o abundance_n my_o wish_n and_o hearty_a prayer_n to_o god_n be_v and_o i_o think_v not_o my_o alone_a but_o of_o all_o good_a man_n neither_o will_v i_o account_v my_o life_n dear_a to_o be_v spend_v in_o the_o furtherance_n of_o it_o that_o the_o miserable_a rent_n and_o wide_a wound_n which_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n may_v by_o some_o good_a mean_n be_v close_v up_o for_o the_o spare_n of_o the_o effusion_n of_o so_o much_o christian_a blood_n the_o secure_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o christian_a prince_n the_o settle_n of_o so_o great_a distraction_n in_o christian_a mind_n the_o wipe_v away_o of_o the_o scandal_n of_o division_n from_o the_o christian_a profession_n and_o last_o resist_v with_o unite_a force_n the_o common_a enemy_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o glorious_a name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o as_o long_o as_o the_o publish_v bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v hang_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o follower_n on_o this_o principle_n i_n and_o my_o church_n can_v possible_o err_v and_o with_o the_o same_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o opposite_n be_v the_o force_n and_o evidence_n of_o their_o argument_n never_o so_o clear_a and_o strong_a i_o can_v conceive_v otherwise_o of_o such_o a_o wish_n then_o of_o a_o honest_a desire_n but_o without_o any_o apparent_a hope_n of_o success_n for_o if_o divine_a authority_n do_v concur_v with_o they_o in_o all_o their_o ordinance_n if_o god_n spirit_n infallible_o assist_v they_o in_o all_o their_o decision_n what_o remain_v there_o but_o only_o that_o they_o teach_v we_o believe_v they_o command_v and_o the_o world_n obey_v indeed_o in_o humane_a government_n where_o reason_n be_v shut_v out_o there_o tyranny_n be_v thrust_v in_o but_o where_o god_n command_v to_o ask_v a_o reason_n be_v presumption_n to_o disobey_v rebellion_n to_o this_o miserable_a necessity_n have_v their_o assertion_n tie_v they_o which_o they_o have_v lay_v for_o their_o eternal_a foundation_n miserable_a to_o themselves_o and_o miserable_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n nay_o in_o so_o many_o conference_n as_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o this_o age_n for_o pacification_n it_o have_v be_v true_o observe_v that_o ere_o they_o part_v they_o plain_o discover_v they_o come_v not_o with_o any_o such_o intent_n as_o to_o yield_v any_o thing_n for_o peace_n much_o less_o for_o truth_n sake_n but_o only_o to_o assay_v either_o by_o persuasion_n to_o reduce_v or_o otherwise_o by_o cunning_a to_o entrap_v and_o disgrace_v their_o adversary_n and_o if_o some_o one_o of_o they_o have_v show_v himself_o more_o moderate_a at_o any_o time_n it_o have_v be_v his_o utter_a disgrace_n with_o his_o own_o party_n for_o ever_o after_o now_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o my_o answer_n i_o have_v set_v down_o his_o text_n at_o large_a in_o his_o own_o word_n without_o alter_v or_o add_v so_o much_o as_o a_o syllable_n except_o it_o be_v to_o make_v sense_n where_o i_o find_v none_o impute_v the_o error_n thereof_o to_o the_o printer_n rather_o than_o the_o author_n i_o have_v follow_v the_o method_n of_o his_o own_o division_n for_o the_o most_o part_n both_o in_o the_o chapter_n &_o sect._n the_o main_a scope_n of_o every_o sect._n i_o have_v answer_v in_o the_o body_n of_o my_o reply_n stretch_v the_o force_n of_o
reason_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a former_o have_v the_o word_n mystery_n engrave_v on_o his_o diadem_n since_o in_o the_o seventeen_o of_o the_o revel_v at_o the_o five_o verse_n it_o be_v foretell_v it_o shall_v be_v write_v on_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o ●reat_a whore_n for_o to_o pass_v by_o other_o depth_n of_o satan_n as_o they_o be_v call_v revel_v 2._o verse_n 24._o i_o will_v know_v what_o religion_n be_v enter_fw-mi in_o the_o world_n which_o invent_v a_o policy_n like_a to_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n in_o general_a but_o special_o in_o marriage_n it_o be_v hitherto_o the_o best_a stake_n in_o his_o hedge_n and_o without_o exception_n the_o strong_a sinew_n for_o the_o tie_n of_o christian_a prince_n unto_o he_o as_o to_o their_o head_n they_o be_v make_v many_o of_o they_o by_o it_o legitimate_a and_o illegitimate_a without_o it_o so_o they_o stand_v in_o a_o manner_n bind_v to_o defend_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o same_o sword_n that_o they_o do_v their_o own_o crown_n and_o i_o be_o very_o persuade_v be_v it_o not_o that_o they_o lie_v obnoxious_a to_o he_o in_o this_o regard_n some_o of_o they_o will_v not_o stick_v so_o close_o to_o he_o as_o they_o do_v especial_o since_o the_o publish_n of_o his_o majesty_n learned_a and_o godly_a premonition_n unto_o they_o far_o what_o use_v they_o make_v of_o confession_n for_o the_o discovery_n of_o all_o secret_n as_o well_o of_o nature_n as_o of_o state_n indulgence_n canonisation_n consecration_n of_o their_o bloody_a inquisition_n which_o like_o a_o sharp_a northern_a wind_n nip_v the_o spring_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o bud_n of_o forge_v false_a author_n and_o corrupt_v the_o true_a of_o suppress_v the_o book_n of_o our_o writer_n and_o correct_v their_o own_o of_o spread_v false_a rumour_n and_o raze_v all_o antiquity_n that_o make_v against_o they_o the_o world_n have_v long_o since_o discover_v beside_o all_o this_o they_o have_v a_o bait_n for_o every_o fish_n a_o motive_n to_o draw_v every_o several_a humour_n for_o a_o ambitious_a disposition_n they_o have_v a_o triple_a crown_n or_o a_o cardinal_n cap_n for_o a_o contemplative_a a_o monk_n cloister_n or_o a_o friar_n cowl_n for_o a_o work_a practical_a head_n employment_n in_o state_n affair_n for_o a_o scholastic_a preach_v &_o write_v and_o in_o writing_n some_o they_o set_v to_o meditation_n some_o to_o politic_a discourse_n some_o to_o case_n of_o conscience_n some_o to_o commentary_n some_o to_o controversy_n according_a to_o the_o several_a point_n and_o temper_n of_o their_o wit_n nay_o he_o that_o shall_v but_o consider_v the_o politic_a form_n of_o government_n observe_v in_o the_o only_a order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n their_o rule_n their_o intelligence_n their_o correspondence_n their_o infinite_a cunning_a device_n how_o to_o win_v some_o who_o they_o desire_v for_o respect_n to_o be_v of_o their_o society_n or_o to_o make_v their_o friend_n and_o to_o disgrace_n or_o remove_v other_o who_o they_o suspect_v to_o stand_v in_o theirway_v may_v just_o pronounce_v of_o they_o that_o they_o have_v perfect_o learn_v the_o former_a part_n of_o our_o saviour_n lesson_n 1●_n be_v wise_a as_o serpent_n but_o not_o the_o latter_a be_v you_o innocent_a as_o dove_n whereas_o nothing_o argue_v the_o inocency_n of_o our_o cause_n more_o then_o that_o it_o hitherto_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v support_v mere_o by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n h_o surely_n if_o true_a religion_n be_v unchangeable_a than_o the_o romish_n can_v be_v the_o true_a it_o have_v suffer_v so_o many_o change_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n that_o we_o may_v now_o just_o question_v it_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o same_o or_o no_o as_o the_o scholar_n of_o athens_n do_v theseus_n his_o ship_n after_o many_o reparation_n we_o may_v seek_v rome_n in_o rome_n itself_o and_o not_o find_v it_o i_o will_v instance_n only_o in_o the_o mass_n which_o like_o a_o beggar_n cloakehath_fw-mi receive_v so_o many_o addition_n and_o patche●_n that_o if_o s._n peter_n shall_v now_o live_v to_o see_v a_o priest_n say_v mass_n he_o will_v without_o doubt_n conceive_v it_o to_o be_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o the_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n death_n or_o the_o administration_n of_o his_o supper_n and_o to_o speak_v a_o truth_n as_o long_a as_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v hold_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o lively_a oracle_n and_o eternal_a truth_n of_o god_n it_o ca●not_v be_v but_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v ground_v on_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o subject_a to_o variation_n as_o be_v the_o conception_n of_o man_n mind_n so_o that_o your_o ground_n for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o that_o religion_n wherein_o a_o ma●_n may_v find_v rest_n unto_o his_o soul_n be_v excellent_a good_a but_o your_o application_n erroneous_a since_o there_o be_v indeed_o no_o rest_n but_o upon_o eternal_a truth_n and_o no_o truth_n eternal_a but_o that_o which_o be_v divine_a b._n c._n 3._o my_o next_o care_n than_o be_v after_o i_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n by_o all_o the_o best_a mean_n i_o can_v to_o inform_v myself_o whether_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n be_v indeed_o the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v prefigure_v and_o prophesy_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v perfect_v by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o it_o deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n to_o continue_v by_o perpetual_a succession_n in_o his_o visible_a church_n until_o his_o come_n again_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o new_a one_o for_o private_a purpose_n of_o statesman_n invent_v and_o by_o humane_a law_n establish_v of_o this_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o make_v some_o doubt_n because_o i_o hear_v man_n talk_v much_o in_o those_o day_n of_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v then_o late_o make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n g._n h._n 3._o i_o will_v demand_v by_o m._n doctor_n leave_n whetherman_n may_v not_o talk_v as_o much_o of_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n mary_n reign_n as_o queen_n elizabeth_n but_o you_o will_v say_v queen_n mary_n be_v a_o restitution_n to_o the_o ancient_a and_o we_o reply_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v a_o restitution_n to_o a_o more_o ancient_a and_o most_o true_a it_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a be_v the_o most_o true_a so_o that_o in_o this_o regard_n we_o may_v just_o say_v nos_fw-la non_fw-la sumus_fw-la novatores_fw-la sed_fw-la vos_fw-la estis_fw-la veteratores_fw-la and_o with_o our_o saviour_n 8._o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o b._n c._n 4._o i_o be_v sorry_a to_o hear_v of_o a_o change_n and_o of_o a_o new_a religion_n see_v i_o think_v in_o reason_n if_o true_a religion_n be_v eternal_a the_o new_a religion_n can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a but_o yet_o i_o hope_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n be_v not_o a_o change_n or_o a_o new_a religion_n but_o a_o restitution_n of_o the_o old_a and_o that_o the_o change_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o in_o process_n of_o time_n may_v perhaps_o grow_v to_o be_v superstitious_a and_o idolatrous_a and_o that_o therefore_o england_n have_v do_v well_o to_o leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o reform_v itself_o and_o for_o this_o purpose_n i_o do_v at_o my_o leisure_n and_o best_a opportunity_n as_o i_o come_v to_o more_o judgement_n read_v over_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n and_o observe_v all_o the_o a●terations_n of_o religion_n that_o i_o can_v find_v therein_o but_o when_o i_o find_v there_o that_o the_o present_a religion_n of_o england_n be_v a_o plain_a change_n and_o change_v upon_o change_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o the_o change_n at_o all_o at_o the_o first_o but_o only_o that_o ●_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o be_v desirous_a to_o change_v his_o old_a bedfellow_n that_o he_o may_v leave_v some_o heir_n male_n behind_o he_o for_o belike_o he_o fear_v the_o female_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v the_o title_n of_o scotland_n and_o that_o the_o change_n be_v continue_v and_o increase_v by_o the_o posterity_n of_o his_o latter_a wife_n i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o suspect_v some_o thing_n but_o yet_o the_o before_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o hope_v of_o preferment_n will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o believe_v but_o that_o all_o be_v well_o and_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v g._n h._n 4._o you_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o your_o care_n be_v assoon_o as_o you_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n by_o all_o mean_v you_o can_v to_o inform_v yourself_o whether_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n be_v indeed_o the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v prefigure_v and_o prophesy_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v perfect_v by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o
censure_n of_o wise_a man_n might_n deserve_o have_v purchase_v some_o more_o respective_a term_n of_o the_o father_n whereas_o thuanus_n the_o most_o unpartial_a and_o judicious_a historiographer_n of_o our_o age_n give_v this_o testimony_n of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o singular_a natural_a endowment_n and_o such_o a_o one_o in_o who_o have_v he_o not_o too_o much_o loose_v the_o reins_n to_o this_o pleasure_n you_o can_v hardly_o find_v want_v any_o perfection_n nay_o after_o his_o divorce_n from_o his_o queen_n and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o bishop_n which_o he_o name_v say_v he_o be_v honest_a man_n and_o good_a scholar_n be_v ever_o himself_o a_o great_a patron_n of_o learning_n which_o testimony_n i_o the_o rather_o allege_v because_o the_o spanish_a expurgatorie_n index_n have_v raze_v it_o as_o also_o diverse_a other_o very_a memorable_a passage_n in_o this_o author_n b._n c._n 5._o thus_o i_o satisfy_v myself_o at_o school_n and_o study_v the_o art_n and_o philosophy_n and_o other_o humane_a learning_n until_o be_v master_n of_o art_n and_o fellow_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la college_n in_o cambridge_n i_o be_v at_o last_o by_o the_o statute_n of_o that_o house_n call_v to_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n and_o bind_v to_o take_v upon_o i_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n than_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n for_o the_o better_a satisfaction_n of_o my_o own_o soul_n and_o the_o save_n of_o otherman_n to_o look_v as_o far_o into_o the_o matter_n as_o possible_a i_o can_v that_o i_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o a_o very_a good_a library_n in_o that_o college_n i_o resolve_v with_o myself_o to_o study_v hard_a and_o set_v aside_o all_o respect_n of_o man_n then_o alive_a or_o of_o writer_n that_o have_v move_v or_o maintain_v controversy_n far_o than_o to_o image_n understand_v the_o question_n which_o be_v betwixt_o they_o i_o fall_v to_o my_o prayer_n and_o betake_v myself_o whole_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o clerk_n church_n history_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o have_v no_o interest_n on_o either_o side_n and_o special_o ●_o make_v choice_n of_o s._n augustine_n because_o i_o hope_v to_o find_v most_o comfort_n in_o he_o for_o the_o confirm_v of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o confute_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n g._n h._n 5._o after_o your_o peruse_v the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n you_o betake_v yourself_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o church_n history_n and_o ancient_a father_n and_o in_o special_a make_v choice_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o who_o you_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n every_o where_o confirm_v and_o we_o confute_v but_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o one_o main_a point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o supremacy_n of_o that_o sea_n and_o whether_o a_o chief_a feather_n in_o that_o wing_n be_v not_o appeal_n from_o foreign_a part_n now_o whether_o s._n augustine_n approve_v they_o i_o appeal_v to_o his_o practice_n be_v one_o of_o those_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n who_o discover_v and_o disclaim_v the_o impudency_n and_o forgery_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o challenge_v that_o as_o right_n which_o some_o of_o constraint_n have_v perform_v and_o other_o of_o courtesy_n have_v grant_v for_o which_o himself_o with_o his_o fellow-bishop_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v find_v in_o the_o church_n history_n so_o die_v some_o of_o his_o work_n i_o have_v read_v special_o those_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o of_o they_o i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o they_o confirm_v no_o one_o point_n of_o romish_a doctrine_n controverse_v at_o this_o day_n and_o sure_o there_o if_o any_o where_o have_v be_v the_o proper_a place_n to_o declare_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n supreme_a judge_n in_o all_o controversy_n b._n c._n 6._o in_o this_o sort_n i_o spend_v my_o time_n continual_o for_o many_o year_n and_o note_v down_o whatsoever_o i_o can_v gather_v or_o rather_o snatch_v either_o from_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o father_n to_o serve_v my_o turn_n but_o when_o after_o all_o my_o pain_n and_o desire_n to_o serve_v myself_o of_o antiquity_n i_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v every_o where_o confirm_v &_o by_o most_o profound_a demonstration_n out_o of_o tradition_n holy_a scripture_n make_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n scripture_n gospel_n and_o most_o conformable_a to_o all_o soul_n christian_a soul_n and_o see_v the_o general_n current_a opinion_n of_o our_o great_a preacher_n every_o where_o confute_v either_o in_o plain_a term_n or_o by_o most_o unanswerable_a consequence_n although_o my_o understanding_n be_v thereby_o great_o edify_v for_o which_o i_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o render_v immortal_a thanks_n to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o by_o these_o mean_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o show_v himself_o unto_o i_o yet_o my_o heart_n be_v much_o cross_v grieve_v that_o i_o must_v be_v fain_o either_o not_o to_o preach_v at_o all_o or_o to_o cross_v and_o var●e_v from_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o see_v be_v common_o receive_v g._n h._n 6._o i_o have_v peruse_v your_o common-place_n book_n write_v for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o your_o own_o hand_n and_o indeed_o it_o thereby_o appear_v that_o your_o note_n may_v more_o deserve_o be_v term_v a_o snatch_v than_o a_o gather_v though_o by_o your_o will_n you_o solemn_o bequeath_v it_o as_o a_o rich_a legacy_n to_o c.c.c._n in_o camb._n whereof_o you_o be_v a_o fellow_n but_o you_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n you_o say_v every_o where_o confirm_v by_o most_o profound_a demonstration_n from_o holy_a scripture_n in_o truth_n i_o must_v confess_v they_o be_v so_o deep_a that_o throughout_o this_o treatise_n they_o be_v invisible_a but_o i_o much_o desire_v to_o know_v by_o what_o profound_a demonstration_n from_o holy_a scripture_n you_o will_v prove_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o exercise_n of_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o language_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o people_n or_o last_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n usurpation_n over_o the_o temporal_n of_o prince_n unless_o you_o bring_v bellarmine_n profound_a demonstration_n to_o that_o purpose_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la or_o baronius_n surge_n occide_fw-la &_o manduca_fw-la or_o the_o canonist_n fecit_fw-la deus_fw-la duo_fw-la magna_fw-la luminaria_fw-la much_o like_v a_o profound_a demonstration_n i_o have_v hear_v of_o for_o proof_n of_o the_o salic_a law_n the_o lily_n neither_o labour_n nor_o spin_v therefore_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n ne_fw-fr tombe_fw-fr point_fw-fr sur_fw-fr laquenoville_n fall_v not_o to_o the_o distaff_n or_o like_o that_o of_o a_o friar_n who_o will_v needs_o prove_v that_o ten_o world_n be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o that_o out_o of_o our_o saviour_n word_n in_o the_o gospel_n anon_o decem_fw-la factisunt_fw-la mundi_fw-la but_o he_o be_v well_o answer_v by_o his_o brother_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v sed_fw-la ubisunt_fw-la novem_fw-la and_o do_v he_o not_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o d._n profundus_fw-la trow_v you_o for_o so_o profound_a a_o demonstration_n 42._o by_o such_o like_a profound_a demonstration_n you_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n gospel_n which_o for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v 27._o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o for_o the_o power_n of_o his_o minister_n 36._o my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n word_n deliver_v as_o it_o seem_v out_o of_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n as_o foresee_v what_o error_n shall_v in_o after_o age_n spring_v up_o in_o his_o church_n but_o you_o do_v well_o to_o say_v that_o those_o doctrine_n be_v make_v agreeable_a to_o this_o truth_n they_o may_v be_v make_v so_o or_o at_o leastwise_o make_v to_o seem_v so_o by_o forge_v and_o hammer_v upon_o the_o anvil_n of_o man_n conceit_n howbeit_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v not_o so_o as_o the_o bell_n seem_v to_o the_o child_n to_o ring_v that_o tune_n which_o run_v in_o his_o head_n b._n c._n 7._o be_v thus_o perplex_v with_o myself_o what_o course_n i_o be_v best_a to_o take_v i_o reflect_v back_o again_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o because_o the_o most_o of_o those_o preacher_n which_o draw_v the_o people_n after_o they_o in_o those_o day_n be_v puritan_n and_o have_v ground_v their_o divinity_n upon_o calvin_n institution_n i_o think_v peradventure_o that_o they_o have_v get_v the_o multitude_n on_o their_o side_n may_v wrong_v the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o they_o desire_v to_o do_v in_o her_o discipline_n which_o indeed_o
very_o honesty_n honest_a man_n and_o such_o as_o i_o do_v love_n with_o all_o my_o heart_n i_o be_v very_o loath_a to_o dissent_v from_o they_o in_o private_a much_o more_o loath_a to_o confess_v oppose_v they_o in_o public_a and_o yet_o see_v i_o must_v needs_o preach_v i_o be_v loath_a of_o all_o to_o oppugn_v my_o own_o conscience_n together_o with_o the_o faith_n wherein_o i_o be_v oppugn_v baptize_v and_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o to_o who_o i_o preach_v nevertheless_o have_v get_v this_o ground_n to_o work_v upon_o i_o begin_v to_o comfort_v myself_o with_o hope_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o religion_n establish_v in_o england_n be_v the_o same_o at_o the_o least_o in_o part_n l_o which_o now_o be_v and_o ever_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o defect_n whereof_o may_v be_v supply_v whensoever_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o move_v your_o majesty_n thereunto_o without_o abrogate_a that_n which_o be_v already_o by_o law_n establish_v which_o i_o still_o pray_v for_o and_o be_o not_o altogether_o out_o of_o m_o hope_v to_o see_v and_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n as_o far_o as_o i_o dare_v rather_o by_o n_o charitable_a construction_n to_o reconcile_v thing_n that_o seem_v different_a that_o so_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v for_o ever_o sa●ed_v in_o unity_n then_o by_o malicious_a calumniation_n to_o maintain_v quarrel_n that_o so_o man_n turn_n may_v for_o a_o time_n be_v serve_v in_o dissension_n g._n h._n 8._o l_o how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v esteem_v heretic_n who_o broach_n their_o own_o fantasy_n since_o hold_v as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v we_o hold_v the_o same_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v m_o true_o you_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o hope_v to_o live_v to_o see_v thos●_n unwarrantable_a supply_n you_o speak_v of_o by_o his_o majesty_n command_n aswell_o in_o regard_n of_o your_o own_o infirmity_n of_o body_n as_o his_o majesty_n strong_a resolution_n of_o mind_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o it_o may_v be_v your_o intelligence_n deceive_v you_o sure_o we_o be_v your_o hope_n fail_v you_o n_o touch_v your_o opinion_n of_o reconciliation_n whether_o it_o may_v be_v think_v to_o proceed_v of_o charity_n or_o arrogancy_n as_o also_o whether_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o in_o a_o manner_n possible_a as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v i_o shall_v have_v fit_a opportunity_n to_o discuss_v hereafter_o then_o in_o this_o place_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v by_o the_o way_n to_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o my_o judgement_n you_o call_v that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o distraction_n it_o tend_v to_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o rent_n and_o a_o draw_v of_o we_o further_o from_o other_o reform_a church_n and_o ne●rer_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o your_o meaning_n the_o same_o charitable_a construction_n will_v have_v serve_v to_o reconcile_v thing_n that_o to_o you_o look_v through_o the_o false_a spectacle_n of_o prejudice_n &_o passion_n seem_v very_o different_a betwixt_o we_o &_o other_o reform_a church_n abroad_o much_o better_o &_o easy_a then_o for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o those_o main_a &_o broad_a difference_n which_o be_v indeed_o betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o i_o fear_v i_o may_v too_o true_o say_v as_o abraham_n do_v to_o the_o rich_a glutton_n in_o hell_n 26._o between_o you_o and_o we_o there_o be_v a_o great_a gulf_n set_v so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v go_v from_o hence_o to_o you_o can_v not_o neither_o can_v they_o come_v from_o thence_o to_o us._n i_o speak_v in_o regard_n of_o reconciliation_n in_o difference_n of_o religion_n for_o otherwise_o but_o too_o many_o be_v suffer_v to_o go_v from_o hence_o thither_o and_o have_v suck_v their_o poison_n to_o return_v again_o at_o their_o pleasure_n for_o the_o vomit_v of_o it_o out_o among_o we_o notwithstanding_o the_o sharp_a penalty_n and_o great_a gulf_n set_v between_o us._n b._n c._n 9_o in_o this_o course_n although_o i_o do_v never_o proceed_v any_o far_a than_o law_n will_v give_v i_o leave_v yet_o i_o find_v the_o one_o puritan_n and_o caluinist_n and_o all_o the_o creature_n of_o schism_n to_o be_v my_o utter_a enemy_n who_o be_v also_o like_o the_o son_n of_o zeruiah_n too_o strong_a for_o davi●_n he_o himself_o 2._o sam_n 3._o 39_o but_o i_o well_o perceive_v that_o all_o 21._o temperate_a and_o understand_a man_n who_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o the_o schism_n be_v glad_a to_o hear_v the_o truth_n gate_n honest_o and_o plain_o preach_v unto_o they_o and_o my_o hope_n be_v by_o patience_n and_o continuance_n i_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n unmask_v hypocriosie_n hypocrisy_n and_o gain_v credit_n to_o the_o comfortable_a doctrine_n of_o antiquity_n even_o among_o those_o also_o who_o out_o of_o misinformation_n and_o prejudice_n do_v as_o yet_o most_o mislike_v it_o and_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o your_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n come_v only_o by_o o_o catholic_n and_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o schism_n which_o will_v very_o fain_o have_v utter_o extinguish_v it_o and_o that_o both_o your_o p_o disposition_n by_o nature_n your_o amity_n with_o catholic_a prince_n your_o speech_n and_o your_o proclamation_n do_v at_o the_o beginning_n all_o tend_v to_o peace_n and_o unity_n i_o hope_v that_o this_o endeavour_n of_o i_o to_o enforce_v catholic_a religion_n at_o the_o least_o as_o far_o as_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o catechism_n will_v give_v leave_n shall_v be_v well_o accept_v of_o your_o majesty_n and_o be_v as_o a_o introduction_n unto_o far_a peace_n and_o unity_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n g._n h._n 9_o o_o his_o majesty_n right_a to_o the_o crown_n be_v double_a the_o one_o from_o his_o mother_n lineal_o descend_v of_o the_o first_o match_n of_o the_o lady_n margaret_n daughter_n to_o henry_n the_o vii_o and_o sister_n to_o henry_n the_o viii_o king_n of_o england_n with_o james_n the_o four_o king_n of_o scotland_n his_o majesty_n great_a grandfather_n who_o though_o she_o embrace_v that_o religion_n in_o which_o she_o be_v bring_v up_o be_v never_o acquaint_v with_o any_o other_o yet_o as_o his_o majesty_n observe_v in_o his_o monitorie_a preface_n to_o the_o christian_a prince_n she_o dislike_v some_o of_o the_o superstitious_a ceremony_n and_o abhor_v those_o new_a opinion_n which_o the_o jesuit_n call_v catholic_a his_o second_o right_n above_o any_o other_o pre●endor_n be_v from_o his_o father_n descend_v of_o the_o second_o match_n of_o the_o say_a lady_n margaret_n with_o archibald_n douglas_n earl_n of_o angush_n be_v bring_v up_o in_o q._n elizabeth_n court_n who_o father_n the_o duke_n of_o lenox_n profess_v the_o reform_a religion_n as_o well_o appear_v by_o his_o practice_n in_o his_o life_n in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o many_o minister_n at_o his_o death_n in_o all_o likelihood_n his_o majesty_n father_n himself_o shall_v be_v that_o way_n affect_v though_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n upon_o the_o relation_n of_o i_o know_v not_o who_o will_v fain_o have_v it_o otherwise_o and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o schism_n will_v fain_o have_v extinguish_v his_o majesty_n right_a it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o those_o who_o you_o call_v schismatics_n be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n under_o god_n to_o preserve_v his_o majesty_n not_o only_o right_a but_o life_n against_o the_o fury_n of_o some_o who_o you_o call_v catholic_n both_o before_o his_o mother_n death_n and_o since_o p_o from_o his_o majesty_n progenitor_n you_o come_v to_o his_o own_o disposition_n by_o nature_n his_o amity_n with_o catholic_a prince_n his_o speech_n his_o proclamation_n which_o all_o tend_v at_o the_o beginning_n you_o say_v to_o peace_n and_o unity_n true_a indeed_o it_o be_v that_o his_o majesty_n by_o nature_n be_v dispose_v to_o mercy_n his_o amity_n with_o christian_a prince_n argue_v his_o charity_n and_o heroical_a ingenuity_n void_a of_o jealousy_n &_o suspicion_n even_o where_o occasion_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v give_v his_o speech_n and_o proclamation_n be_v not_o bloody_a yet_o all_o this_o can_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n as_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o endeavour_v a_o peace_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n no_o more_o than_o a_o league_n with_o the_o great_a turk_n for_o traffic_n shall_v give_v occasion_n of_o join_v with_o he_o in_o mahometisme_n but_o have_v you_o withal_o with_o the_o other_o eye_n reflect_v a_o little_a back_n upon_o his_o majesty_n education_n from_o his_o very_a cradle_n the_o choice_n of_o his_o alliance_n in_o marriage_n his_o counsel_n to_o his_o son_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o basilicon_fw-la doron_n his_o
be_v to_o this_o point_n more_o full_o and_o clear_o speak_v b._n c._n 13._o and_o for_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n they_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o accident_n which_o they_o see_v but_o the_o substance_n which_o they_o believe_v and_o sure_o if_o christ_n be_v there_o true_o &_o real_o present_a as_o your_o majesty_n seem_v to_o grant_v he_o be_v he_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o if_o we_o see_v he_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o more_o idolatry_n in_o the_o one_o then_o in_o the_o other_o if_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o shall_v visible_o appear_v in_o person_n as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n jew_n and_o infidel_n will_v hold_v it_o for_o idolatry_n to_o worship_v he_o and_o will_v crucify_v he_o again_o and_o so_o will_v all_o heretic_n also_o who_o refuse_v to_o worship_v he_o in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o he_o be_v real_o present_a g._n h._n 13._o you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o people_n do_v not_o worship_v the_o accident_n which_o they_o see_v but_o the_o substance_n which_o they_o see_v not_o but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o right_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o lie_v hide_v and_o as_o it_o be_v bury_v under_o those_o accident_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a saint_n augustine_n on_o who_o you_o so_o much_o rely_v be_v so_o far_o from_o defend_v or_o else_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n before_o mention_v that_o in_o diverse_a place_n he_o maintain_v the_o clear_a contrary_n to_o both_o and_o to_o grant_v that_o after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n pronounce_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o fold_a or_o knead_v up_o in_o a_o bodily_a manner_n yet_o whether_o the_o priest_n that_o pronounce_v they_o be_v right_o order_v and_o if_o he_o be_v whether_o he_o pronounce_v they_o with_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o church_n intend_v they_o may_v just_o make_v a_o doubt_n and_o consequent_o a_o question_n whether_o their_o worship_n be_v idolatrous_a or_o no_o for_o in_o such_o case_n by_o confession_n of_o all_o in_o stead_n of_o christ_n body_n they_o worship_v the_o bread_n for_o our_o part_n we_o constant_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o in_o the_o bread_n whereas_o we_o make_v a_o just_a doubt_n whether_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o who_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n do_v with_o like_a constancy_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n you_o further_o add_v that_o if_o he_o be_v true_o and_o real_o present_a as_o his_o majesty_n seem_v to_o grant_v he_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o if_o we_o see_v he_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n but_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o the_o see_v of_o he_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n that_o make_v the_o matter_n or_o give_v occasion_n of_o worship_v for_o then_o a_o blind_a man_n can_v not_o worship_v he_o at_o all_o nor_o a_o see_a man_n in_o the_o dark_a but_o the_o believe_v of_o he_o to_o be_v present_a in_o a_o bodily_a manner_n we_o believe_v he_o then_o with_o his_o majesty_n it_o be_v calvin_n opinion_n express_v in_o the_o very_a self_n same_o term_n to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o present_a but_o in_o a_o manner_n sacramental_a not_o bodily_a and_o consequent_o not_o to_o be_v worship_v there_o as_o be_v not_o wrap_v up_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n but_o triumph_v in_o heaven_n and_o here_o by_o your_o leave_n how_o submissive_o soever_o you_o will_v seem_v in_o other_o place_n to_o carry_v yourself_o towards_o his_o majesty_n you_o make_v bold_a to_o put_v the_o title_n of_o heretic_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o rank_n he_o among_o no_o better_a than_o ●ewes_n and_o infidel_n but_o our_o just_a defence_n be_v that_o after_o the_o way_n which_o you_o call_v heresy_n we_o give_v more_o true_a and_o lawful_a honour_n to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n than_o you_o cast_v all_o that_o religious_a worship_n which_o you_o give_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o angel_n to_o saint_n to_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o image_n to_o relic_n to_o the_o cross_n and_o all_o that_o opinion_n of_o merit_n of_o supererogation_n and_o satisfaction_n which_o you_o ascribe_v either_o to_o yourselves_o or_o other_o whole_o and_o sole_o upon_o he_o either_o as_o god_n or_o as_o man_n or_o as_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n only_o we_o deny_v to_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o his_o image_n or_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v as_o essential_o due_a to_o he_o as_o to_o they_o undue_a b._n c._n 14._o after_o diverse_a other_o objection_n weak_o not_o so_o much_o because_o i_o be_v not_o as_o be_v cause_n i_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v satisfy_v i_o come_v to_o the_o pope_n suppose_a pride_n and_o tyranny_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o most_o horrible_a treason_n intend_v and_o practise_v by_o catholic_n against_o your_o majesty_n which_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v judicial_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o all_o seem_v to_o redemption_n abhor_v the_o fact_n as_o much_o as_o the_o best_a subiest_n in_o the_o world_n and_o much_o more_o to_o favour_n and_o defend_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n than_o heretic_n do_v and_o they_o say_v that_o although_o your_o majesty_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n yet_o they_o doubt_v not_o but_o if_o subject_n complaint_n be_v make_v in_o a_o judicial_a proceed_n that_o fact_n shall_v be_v judicial_o condemn_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v sufficient_a plot_n that_o all_o catholic_a writer_n do_v condemn_v it_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o breve_fw-la have_v condemn_v it_o exhort_v the_o catholic_n of_o england_n to_o all_o christian_a patience_n and_o obedience_n and_o as_o for_o any_o spirit_n other_o authority_n or_o superiority_n of_o the_o pope_n than_o such_o as_o be_v spiritual_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o none_o that_o do_v stand_v upon_o it_o g._n h._n 14._o you_o well_o say_v they_o seem_v to_o abhor_v the_o fact_n it_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o whereof_o tacitus_n speak_v quae_fw-la nunquam_fw-la laudantur_fw-la nisiperacta_fw-la which_o be_v never_o commend_v till_o they_o be_v end_v have_v it_o take_v effect_n according_a to_o their_o design_n for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o their_o religion_n among_o we_o it_o have_v undoubted_o be_v record_v a_o most_o happy_a and_o fortunate_a success_n which_o now_o by_o abortion_n only_o and_o miscarriage_n be_v style_v a_o horrible_a treason_n and_o if_o they_o defend_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n much_o more_o than_o they_o who_o they_o call_v heretic_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o more_o of_o those_o prince_n w●om_n you_o call_v catholic_n permit_v within_o their_o dominion_n the_o public_a exercise_n of_o religion_n to_o those_o heretic_n than_o the_o contrary_n sure_o in_o my_o judgement_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a argument_n that_o christian_a sta●es_n conceive_v reason_n to_o be_v more_o jealous_a of_o the_o one_o then_o of_o the_o other_o neither_o be_v the_o reason_n far_o to_o be_v seek_v ●ince_n the_o one_o acknowledge_v no_o supreme_a foreign_a power_n which_o the_o other_o do_v but_o the_o pope_n you_o say_v condemn_v the_o powder-plot_n by_o his_o breve_fw-la i_o much_o desire_n to_o see_v that_o breve_fw-la of_o the_o pope_n which_o condemn_v it_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v most_o like_a to_o be_v find_v on_o the_o backside_n of_o constantin_n donation_n as_o a_o ambassador_n of_o venice_n tell_v the_o pope_n touch_v his_o right_n to_o the_o adriatic_a sea_n or_o we_o may_v say_v of_o it_o brevis_fw-la esse_fw-la laboro_fw-la obscurusfio_fw-la he_o be_v so_o brief_a and_o obscure_a in_o it_o as_o we_o can_v find_v no_o such_o matter_n two_o breve_n of_o clements_n i_o remember_v i_o have_v hear_v of_o for_o the_o withstand_v of_o his_o majesty_n entrance_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o two_o other_o of_o paulus_n v._o against_o the_o take_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o i_o marvel_v m._n doctor_n never_o vouchsafe_v so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o remember_v through_o his_o letter_n but_o any_o against_o the_o powder-plot_n i_o can_v call_v to_o mind_n i_o have_v see_v or_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o last_o whereas_o you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o the_o pope_n favourite_n stand_v upon_o none_o other_o authority_n for_o their_o master_n than_o such_o as_o be_v spiritual_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n i_o guess_v their_o meaning_n to_o be_v bellarmine_n indirect_a power_n in_o temporal_n or_o temporal_a power_n in_o ordine_fw-la as_o spiritualia_fw-la in_o relation_n to_o spiritual_a duty_n which_o be_v in_o truth_n upon_o the_o matter_n as_o much_o as_o can_v be_v demand_v by_o they_o
and_o more_o than_o must_v be_v grant_v by_o we_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o deposition_n of_o prince_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o the_o disposition_n of_o their_o crown_n when_o his_o holiness_n shall_v judge_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o appear_v in_o his_o bull_n both_o against_o king_n henry_n the_o father_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o daughter_n and_o thus_o far_o cardinal_n perron_n that_o peaceable_a man_n and_o your_o great_a patron_n express_v himself_o in_o the_o last_o assembly_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n of_o france_n for_o which_o the_o pope_n give_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o stick_v to_o he_o in_o that_o business_n as_o great_a thanks_n as_o if_o they_o have_v save_v saint_n peter_n ship_n from_o sink_v both_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o pope_n suppose_v as_o it_o seem_v that_o those_o spark_n fly_v into_o france_n from_o the_o fire_n of_o england_n howsoever_o sure_o it_o be_v they_o be_v quench_v by_o the_o water_n of_o tiber_n b._n c._n 15._o so_o that_o whereas_o my_o before_o hope_n be_v that_o by_o find_v out_o the_o many_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o shall_v grow_v further_o in_o love_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o joyful_o return_v home_o and_o by_o inveigh_v against_o the_o papist_n both_o enjoy_v my_o present_a preferment_n and_o obtain_v more_o and_o more_o i_o see_v the_o matte●_n be_v like_a to_o fall_v out_o clean_a contrary_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o there_o be_v many_o corruptions●_n in_o all_o state_n god_n have_v not_o his_o wheat_n field_n in_o this_o world_n wherein_o the_o devil_n have_v no_o tare_n grow_v and_o there_o be_v not_o tare_n abound_v more_o rank_n than_o those_o that_o grow_v among_o the_o wheat_n for_o optimi_fw-la corruptio_fw-la pessima_fw-la and_o where_o grace_n abound_v if_o it_o be_v contemn_v there_o sin_n abound_v much_o more_o but_o see_v my_o read_n and_o experience_n have_v now_o teach_v i_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n teach_v and_o practise_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o obedient_a member_n thereof_o be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o circumstance_n substance_n which_o be_v prefigure_v and_o prophesy_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n perfect_v by_o christ_n himself_o deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n perpetual_o and_o universal_o practise_v until_o this_o day_n without_o any_o w_o substantial_a alteration_n and_o that_o the_o new_a religion_n in_o x_o england_n wherein_o it_o do_v differ_v have_v no_o ground_n but_o either_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o parliament_n or_o the_o common_a cry_n and_o voice_n of_o the_o people_n nor_o no_o constancy_n or_o agreement_n with_o itself_o what_o shall_v i_o now_o do_v it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n not_o to_o know_v that_o which_o i_o do_v know_v nor_o to_o doubt_v of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o time_n and_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n and_o bestow_v so_o much_o cost_n and_o make_v so_o many_o trial_n to_o find_v and_o i_o know_v if_o i_o shall_v yield_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n i_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o world_n in_o all_o likelihood_n pe●●on_n utter_o undo_v and_o which_o grieve_v i_o more_o i_o shall_v be_v reject_v of_o your_o majesty_n my_o most_o redoubt_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o despise_v by_o all_o my_o dear_a friend_n and_o lover_n in_o england_n g._n h._n 15._o w_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v indeed_o the_o substance_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o profession_n but_o yet_o by_o consequence_n shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o as_o it_o hold_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v satisfactory_a for_o sin_n and_o yet_o add_v thereunto_o her_o own_o meritorious_a satisfaction_n consequent_o by_o the_o latter_a she_o overthrow_v the_o former_a for_o 21._o if_o righteousness_n be_v by_o the_o law_n than_o christ_n die_v without_o a_o cause_n and_o in_o reason_n impossible_a it_o be_v if_o tradition_n be_v hold_v of_o equal_a value_n with_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o constitute_n of_o substantial_a point_n but_o that_o in_o short_a time_n there_o shall_v ensue_v a_o substantial_a alteration_n and_o he_o that_o know_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v many_o thing_n now_o as_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o it_o held_n not_o in_o former_a age_n know_v little_a what_o have_v be_v ancient_o hold_v or_o now_o be_v x_o if_o by_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n you_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v by_o law_n establish_v as_o in_o common_a construction_n you_o can_v otherwise_o be_v understand_v you_o condemn_v yourself_o out_o of_o your_o own_o mouth_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o acknowledge_v before_o that_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o law_n in_o england_n be_v the_o same_o save_o only_o it_o be_v somewhat_o defective_a which_o now_o be_v and_o ever_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o yet_o here_o you_o say_v it_o have_v no_o ground_n but_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o parliament_n whereas_o in_o truth_n we_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o upon_o the_o sand_n of_o tradition_n and_o which_o of_o we_o have_v the_o sound_a foundation_n i_o appeal_v no_o far_o than_o reason_n itself_o to_o judge_v you_o as_o though_o you_o be_v not_o yet_o 22_o dead_a from_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o world_n burden_n yourselves_o with_o tradition_n as_o touch_v not_o taste_v not_o handle_v not_o which_o all_o perish_v with_o the_o use_n and_o be_v after_o the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n but_o we_o have_v a_o most_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n take_v heed_n thereto_o according_o to_o s._n peter_n counsel_n 19_o as_o to_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n and_o as_o our_o ground_n be_v sure_a so_o be_v our_o agreement_n constant_a and_o uniform_a in_o all_o point_v material_a and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n whereas_o in_o the_o build_n of_o your_o tower_n of_o babel_n such_o diversity_n of_o language_n be_v hear_v that_o there_o be_v hardly_o any_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n or_o point_n in_o controversy_n which_o have_v not_o be_v or_o be_v call_v into_o question_n either_o direct_o or_o by_o consequent_a by_o some_o that_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o church_n which_o you_o call_v catholic_a as_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o he_o who_o shall_v turn_v over_o the_o volume_n of_o of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n which_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n as_o i_o suppose_v that_o his_o work_n be_v not_o allow_v to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o but_o of_o public_a professor_n and_o such_o other_o as_o have_v special_a permission_n from_o their_o superior_n b._n c._n 16._o these_o be_v my_o thought_n at_o the_o spa_n which_o do_v so_o vex_v and_o salvation_n afflict_v my_o soul_n as_o that_o the_o water_n can_v do_v my_o body_n no_o good_a at_o all_o but_o rather_o much_o hurt_n nevertheless_o i_o church_n avoid_v the_o company_n of_o catholic_n abstain_v from_o the_o church_n and_o do_v both_o dispute_n and_o write_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v i_o still_o hope_v that_o time_n will_v give_v better_a counsel_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v to_o go_v from_o the_o spa_n to_o heidelberge_n to_o do_v my_o duty_n there_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o think_v with_o myself_o it_o may_v be_v god_n have_v move_v his_o majesty_n heart_n to_o church_n peace_n and_o reconciliation_n i_o know_v his_o disposition_n be_v so_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o i_o remember_v m._n casaubon_n tell_v i_o when_o i_o france_n bring_v he_o out_o of_o france_n that_o his_o errand_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o mediate_v peace_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n therefore_o i_o think_v before_o i_o will_v submit_v myself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v write_v unto_o m._n casaubon_n such_o a_o letter_n as_o he_o may_v show_v unto_o your_o majesty_n contain_v such_o condition_n as_o i_o think_v may_v satisfy_v your_o majesty_n if_o they_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o copy_n of_o which_o letter_n be_v too_o long_o here_o to_o set_v down_o but_o when_o m._n casaubon_n answer_v i_o that_o he_o know_v your_o majesty_n be_v church_n resolve_v to_o have_v no_o society_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o any_o condition_n what_o soever_o and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v my_o undo_n if_o those_o my_o letter_n shall_v come_v to_o your_o majesty_n hand_n or_o of_o those_o that_o bear_v the_o sway_n i_o begin_v to_o despair_v of_o my_o return_n into_o england_n unless_o i_o will_v overthrow_v both_o the_o health_n of_o my_o body_n and_o the_o quiet_a of_o my_o
word_n so_o many_o and_o forcible_a argument_n to_o the_o contrary_a be_v deduce_v i_o must_v confess_v i_o know_v not_o what_o belong_v to_o logic_n and_o for_o other_o passage_n in_o the_o same_o speech_n which_o seem_v to_o favour_v your_o cause_n you_o must_v either_o injurious_o wrest_v they_o from_o the_o author_n meaning_n or_o make_v they_o by_o reasonable_a construction_n suitable_a to_o these_o howsoever_o yourself_o be_v a_o churchman_n and_o one_o of_o those_o who_o he_o sharp_o tax_v for_o change_v their_o coat_n through_o curiosity_n affectation_n of_o novelty_n or_o discontentment_n in_o their_o private_a humour_n can_v possible_o be_v rank_v among_o they_o to_o who_o as_o to_o mind_n only_o retain_v the_o liquor_n they_o first_o drink_v in_o out_o of_o his_o special_a clemency_n he_o propose_v more_o favourable_a condition_n and_o yet_o among_o these_o too_o he_o have_v since_o discover_v a_o unnatural_a disposition_n who_o he_o hope_v to_o find_v by_o moderate_a &_o gentle_a usage_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o natural_a subjection_n quiet_a and_o well_o mind_a man_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_v if_o his_o majesty_n be_v since_o more_o exasperate_v and_o far_o off_o from_o any_o reconciliation_n with_o that_o religion_n then_o before_o but_o mr._n casaubon_n you_o say_v tell_v you_o that_o his_o errand_n hither_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o mediate_v peace_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o be_v certain_o false_a that_o mr._n casaubon_n errand_n be_v by_o his_o majesty_n intend_v to_o b●_n such_o and_o most_o unlikely_a to_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v by_o mr_n casaubon_n so_o report_v to_o you_o consider_v his_o direct_a and_o express_v write_n both_o before_o his_o come_n over_o and_o since_o against_o the_o chief_a patron_n and_o controversed_a point_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o cardinal_n perron_n where_o he_o assure_v he_o from_o his_o majesty_n mouth_n and_o in_o his_o name_n that_o his_o constant_a purpose_n and_o full_a resolution_n be_v as_o long_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yield_v not_o to_o antiquity_n and_o truth_n to_o entertain_v no_o society_n with_o she_o at_o all_o which_o you_o may_v have_v read_v before_o your_o departure_n and_o spare_v the_o pain_n of_o write_v to_o m._n casaubon_n who_o that_o i_o may_v yet_o more_o full_o clear_a from_o this_o imputation_n be_v not_o able_a now_o to_o speak_v for_o himself_o i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o his_o letter_n write_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o my_o lord_n grace_n of_o canterbury_n upon_o this_o very_a occasion_n in_o which_o he_o term_v the_o report_n no_o better_a than_o the_o slander_n of_o a_o wicked_a apostate_n illustrissimo_fw-la &_o reverendissimo_fw-la praesuli_fw-la domino_fw-la cantuariensi_fw-la totius_fw-la angliae_fw-la primati_fw-la &_o domino_fw-la meo_fw-la summa_fw-la obseruantia_fw-la colendo_fw-la illustrissime_fw-la reverendissime_fw-la domine_fw-la heri_fw-la quum_fw-la essem_fw-la in_o aula_n ostendit_fw-la mibi_fw-la regius_fw-la maiestas_fw-la librum_fw-la à_fw-la carerio_fw-la sibi_fw-la missum_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la mira_fw-la quaedam_fw-la de_fw-la i_o narrantur_fw-la puto_fw-la serenissimum_fw-la regem_fw-la tuus_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la illa_fw-la ostendisse_fw-la ego_fw-la dei_fw-la gratia_fw-la puto_fw-la i_o sic_fw-la vixisse_fw-la &_o priusquam_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regnum_fw-la venirem_fw-la &_o postquam_fw-la veni_fw-la in_o angliam_fw-la ut_fw-la curare_fw-la non_fw-la debeam_fw-la quid_fw-la perditus_fw-la apostata_fw-la de●me_fw-la garriat_fw-la aut_fw-la scribat_fw-la apparet_fw-la ipsum_fw-la gravissim●_n iratum_fw-la esse_fw-la mihi_fw-la propter_fw-la epistolam_fw-la quam_fw-la illi_fw-la scripsi_fw-la ut_fw-la ab_fw-la hoc_fw-la insano_fw-la consilio_fw-la eum_fw-la revocarem_fw-la propterea_fw-la id_fw-la agit_fw-fr ut_fw-la meum_fw-la nomen_fw-la apud_fw-la regiam_fw-la maiestatem_fw-la &_o tuam_fw-la reverentiam_fw-la infamet_fw-la sedspero_n meliora_fw-la &_o de_fw-la regesapientissimo_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr te_fw-fr illustrissime_fw-la presul_n apud_fw-la quem_fw-la si_fw-la mihi_fw-la opus_fw-la esse_fw-la apologia_fw-la crederem_fw-la omne_fw-la omisissem_fw-la ut_fw-la tuus_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la praesens_fw-la i_o purgarem_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la puto_fw-la adeo_fw-la infoeliciter_fw-la mecum_fw-la agi_fw-la ut_fw-la in●andi_fw-la apostatae_fw-la calumniae_fw-la aliquid_fw-la apud_fw-la te_fw-la contra_fw-la existimationem_fw-la meam_fw-la valeant_fw-la si_fw-mi iusseris_fw-la statim_fw-la adero_fw-la et_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la tuus_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la satisfaciam_fw-la interim_n quam_fw-la sim_fw-la occupatus_fw-la in_o colophone_fw-la imponendo_fw-la operimeo_fw-la narrabit_fw-la tuus_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la vederburnus_fw-la noster_fw-la verè_fw-la pius_fw-la iwenis_fw-la &_o tua_fw-la benevolentia_fw-la presul_n illustriss_n non_fw-la indignus_fw-la deus_fw-la immortalis_fw-la te_fw-la seruet_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la suae_fw-la in_o musaeo_n fourteen_o kal._n jan._n mdcxiii_o tuus_fw-la illustriss_n reverentiae_fw-la obseruantissimus_fw-la cultor_fw-la isa._n casaubonus_n right_o reverend_a &_o my_o gracious_a lord_n yesterday_o be_v at_o court_n the_o king_n majesty_n show_v i_o a_o book_n send_v he_o from_o carier_n wherein_o certain_a strange_a thing_n be_v report_v of_o i_o i_o think_v his_o majesty_n have_v show_v they_o unto_o your_o grace_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n so_o live_v both_o before_o i_o come_v into_o this_o kingdom_n and_o since_o i_o come_v into_o england_n that_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o care_v what_o a_o forlorn_a apostate_n prattle_v or_o write_v of_o i_o it_o appear_v he_o be_v very_o angry_a with_o i_o for_o a_o letter_n i_o write_v he_o to_o reclaim_v he_o from_o that_o mad_a course_n thereupon_o he_o go_v about_o to_o traduce_v i_o to_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o your_o grace_n but_o i_o hope_v better_a both_o of_o that_o most_o wise_a king_n and_o of_o you_o most_o renown_a prelate_n unto_o who_o if_o i_o think_v there_o be_v need_n of_o apology_n i_o will_v lay_v all_o other_o thing_n aside_o in_o person_n purge_v myself_o unto_o your_o grace_n but_o my_o case_n i_o trust_v be_v not_o so_o unhappy_a that_o the_o slander_n of_o a_o lewd_a apostate_n shall_v be_v of_o any_o force_n with_o you_o against_o my_o reputation_n if_o you_o command_v i_o will_v forthwith_o repair_v unto_o you_o and_o satisfy_v your_o grace_n unto_o the_o full_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n how_o busy_o i_o be_o occupy_v about_o the_o conclusion_n of_o my_o work_n my_o friend_n vederburne_n a_o very_a religious_a young_a man_n and_o not_o unworthy_a of_o your_o grace_n favour_n can_v show_v your_o grace_n god_n immortal_a preserve_v you_o unto_o his_o church_n from_o my_o study_n decemb._n 19_o 1613._o your_o grace_n most_o respective_a obseruer_n isa._n casaubon_n and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o averse_a he_o be_v from_o union_n with_o that_o church_n i_o will_v hereunto_o add_v a_o former_a letter_n write_v likewise_o to_o my_o l._n grace_n of_o canterbury_n touch_v the_o same_o business_n before_o he_o be_v thus_o provoke_v by_o d._n carier_n upon_o occasion_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n from_o the_o doctor_n to_o he_o illustrissime_fw-la &_o reverendissime_fw-la domine_fw-la mitto_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la epistolam_fw-la de_fw-la quâ_fw-la inaudivisti_fw-la ego_fw-la acceptam_fw-la epistolam_fw-la ut_fw-la regi_fw-la communicaretur_fw-la putavi_fw-la premendam_fw-la neque_fw-la ostendendam_fw-la cviquam_fw-la mortalium_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la possum_fw-la probare_fw-la consilium_fw-la viri_fw-la illius_fw-la eruditi_fw-la qui_fw-la epistolam_fw-la scripsit_fw-la quare_fw-la respondi_fw-la illi_fw-la statim_fw-la &_o multis_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la egi_fw-la ut_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la proposito_fw-la desisteret_fw-la multas_fw-la rationes_fw-la ei_fw-la attuli_fw-la cur_n certò_fw-la crederem_fw-la amentiam_fw-la esse_fw-la aut_fw-la poti●s_fw-la furorem_fw-la boni_fw-la aliquid_fw-la sperare_fw-la à_fw-la romano_n phalari_n nam_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbo_fw-la usus_fw-la sum_fw-la qui_fw-la nostra_fw-la mala_fw-la si_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la ridet_fw-la proposui_fw-la ei_fw-la ob_fw-la oculos_fw-la quam_fw-la essent_fw-la alieni_fw-la proceres_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la aequitate_fw-la imprimis_fw-la bellarminus_n de_fw-fr cvius_fw-la impietate_fw-la plura_fw-la ad_fw-la eum_fw-la scripsi_fw-la posui_fw-la illi_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la quanto_fw-la cum_fw-la svo_fw-la periculo_fw-la patronum_fw-la papae_fw-la videretur_fw-la agere_fw-la attuli_fw-la testimonia_fw-la matthaei_n paris_n de_fw-fr summâ_fw-la angliae_fw-la infoelicitate_fw-la quando_fw-la papae_fw-la ro._n paruit_fw-la addidi_fw-la exemplum_fw-la illius_fw-la narbonensis_n qui_fw-la nuper_fw-la ad_fw-la ser._n regem_fw-la similis_fw-la argumenti_fw-la librum_fw-la miserat_fw-la i_o iussum_fw-la à_fw-la rege_fw-la loqui_fw-la eum_fw-la librum_fw-la detestatum_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o d._n regem_fw-la voluisse_fw-la in_o latere_fw-la libri_fw-la animaduertere_fw-la posthaec_fw-la quid_fw-la factum_fw-la sit_fw-la carerio_fw-la nescio_fw-la hoc_fw-la ego_fw-la volui_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la tuus_fw-la significatum_fw-la sed_fw-la expectabam_fw-la donec_fw-la ad_fw-la urbem_fw-la redijsses_fw-la nam_fw-la i_o libri_fw-la mei_fw-la editio_fw-la domi_fw-la tenet_fw-la sunt_fw-la alia_fw-la quaedam_fw-la gravia_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la acturus_fw-la sum_fw-la cum_fw-la tuâ_fw-la reverentiâ_fw-la post_fw-la unum_fw-la aut_fw-la
alterum_fw-la diem_fw-la deo_fw-la volente_fw-la qui_fw-la te_fw-la seruet_fw-la illustrissime_fw-la domine_fw-la londini_fw-la viii_o eid_n sept._n mdcxiii_o tuus_fw-la reverentiae_fw-la obseruantiss_fw-la cultor_n be_v casaubonus_n right_o reverend_a &_o my_o gracious_a lord_n i_o send_v unto_o your_o grace_n the_o letter_n whereof_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o letter_n be_v send_v i_o with_o intent_n it_o shall_v be_v communicate_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o i_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o be_v suppress_v and_o to_o be_v show_v unto_o none_o for_o i_o can_v approve_v the_o drift_n of_o that_o learned_a man_n who_o wr●te_v the_o letter_n wherefore_o i_o answer_v he_o forthwith_o and_o with_o many_o word_n advise_v he_o to_o desist_v from_o that_o purpose_n i_o bring_v he_o many_o reason_n why_o i_o certain_o believe_v it_o be_v folly_n or_o rather_o frenzy_n to_o hope_v for_o any_o good_a from_o the_o romish_a phalaris_n for_o that_o very_a term_n i_o use_v who_o laugh_v at_o our_o evil_n if_o there_o be_v any_o among_o us._n i_o lay_v before_o his_o eye_n how_o averse_a the_o peer_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v from_o all_o equity_n special_o bellarmine_n of_o who_o impiety_n i_o write_v at_o large_a unto_o he_o i_o set_v before_o his_o eye_n with_o how_o great_a danger_n to_o himself_o he_o seem_v to_o become_v the_o pope_n patron_n i_o allege_v testimony_n of_o matthew_n paris_n of_o the_o great_a misery_n of_o england_n when_o it_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n obedience_n i_o add_v the_o example_n of_o that_o narbonois_n who_o of_o late_o send_v unto_o the_o king_n majesty_n a_o book_n of_o the_o like_a argument_n that_o be_v command_v by_o the_o king_n to_o say_v my_o mind_n i_o profess_v my_o detestation_n thereof_o and_o that_o it_o be_v his_o majesty_n will_n to_o have_v some_o animadversion_n set_v in_o the_o margin_n of_o the_o book_n after_o which_o what_o become_v of_o carier_n i_o know_v not_o this_o i_o think_v good_a to_o signify_v unto_o your_o grace_n but_o i_o expect_v until_o you_o be_v return_v unto_o the_o city_n for_o the_o publish_n of_o my_o book_n stay_v meat_n home_o i_o have_v other_o weighty_a matter_n whereof_o to_o advise_v with_o your_o grace_n within_o this_o day_n or_o two_o god_n willing_a who_o preserve_v you_o my_o gracious_a lord_n london_n sept._n 6._o 1613._o your_o grace_n most_o respective_a obseruer_n isa._n casaubon_n b._n c._n 17._o there_o be_v a_o statute_n in_o england_n make_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o to_o make_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n which_o statute_n enjoin_v all_o the_o subject_n of_o england_n on_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o believe_v and_o to_o swear_v they_o do_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o all_o the_o world_n know_v if_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o can_v have_v get_v the_o pope_n to_o divorce_v queen_n katherine_n that_o he_o may_v marry_v anne_n bullen_n that_o statute_n have_v never_o be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o if_o that_o title_n have_v not_o enable_v the_o king_n to_o pull_v down_o abbey_n and_o religious_a house_n and_o give_v they_o to_o lay_v man_n the_o lord_n and_o commons_o of_o that_o time_n will_v never_o have_v suffer_v such_o a_o statute_n to_o be_v make_v this_o statute_n be_v continue_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n to_o serve_v she_o own_o turn_n and_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o your_o majesty_n to_o satisfy_v other_o man_n and_o yet_o your_o majesty_n yield_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o section_n mother_n church_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a bishop_n or_o west_n primate_n of_o all_o the_o western_a church_n which_o i_o do_v also_o very_o believe_v and_o therefore_o i_o do_v very_o think_v he_o have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v some_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n in_o england_n and_o although_o in_o my_o young_a day_n the_o it_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n make_v i_o swear_v as_o other_o do_v for_o which_o i_o pray_v god_n forgive_v i_o yet_o i_o ever_o doubt_v and_o i_o be_o now_o resolve_v that_o no_o it_o christian_a man_n can_v take_v that_o oath_n with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n neither_o will_v i_o ever_o take_v it_o to_o gain_v the_o great_a preferment_n in_o the_o world_n g._n h._n 17._o the_o statute_n here_o intend_v can_v be_v none_o other_o than_o the_o statute_n 26._o of_o h._n viii_o cap._n 1._o for_o that_o be_v the_o first_o statute_n that_o meddle_v with_o the_o supremacy_n which_o statute_n be_v as_o the_o common_a lawyer_n term_v it_o statutum_n declaratiwm_fw-la not_o introductiwm_fw-la novi_fw-la iuris_fw-la as_o do_v clear_o appear_v by_o the_o preamble_n which_o have_v these_o word_n albeit_o the_o king_n majesty_n just_o and_o rightful_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v take_v and_o accept_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o be_v recognize_v by_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n yet_o nevertheless_o for_o corroboration_n and_o confirmation_n thereof_o be_v it_o enact_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v take_v and_o accept_v supreme_a head_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o doctor_n be_v foul_o mistake_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o statute_n make_v by_o k._n henry_n the_o viii_o to_o make_v he_o supreme_a head_n for_o it_o be_v his_o ancient_a right_n that_o make_v he_o so_o and_o it_o be_v his_o clergy_n that_o have_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v so_o before_o the_o make_n of_o this_o statute_n nay_o the_o very_a phrase_n and_o letter_n of_o this_o statute_n itself_o do_v purposely_o renounce_v the_o power_n of_o make_v and_o assume_v only_o the_o authority_n of_o confirm_v whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o henry_n viii_o make_v not_o a_o statute_n to_o make_v himself_o supreme_a in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o mr._n doctor_n affirm_v but_o to_o confirm_v those_o statute_n and_o right_n which_o his_o noble_a progenitor_n as_o just_o challenge_v to_o belong_v to_o their_o crown_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n unjust_o pretend_v to_o be_v annex_v to_o their_o mitre_n and_o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o statute_n which_o according_a to_o his_o understanding_n make_v he_o supreme_a head_n do_v also_o enjoin_v the_o subject_n to_o believe_v and_o swear_v it_o t●_n be_v true_a it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o any_o oath_n in_o that_o statute_n but_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o in_o the_o 28._o of_o henry_n viii_o chap._n 10._o there_o be_v a_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n ordain_v the_o refusal_n whereof_o by_o some_o certain_a person_n enjoin_v by_o that_o act_n to_o take_v it_o be_v make_v high_a treason_n and_o herein_o again_o be_v the_o doctor_n deceive_v nay_o which_o be_v worse_o seek_v to_o deceive_v other_o for_o only_o some_o certain_a person_n be_v bind_v by_o that_o statute_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n and_o not_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o england_n as_o he_o false_o surmise_v anno_fw-la 35._o henry_n viii_o cap._n 1._o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n ordain_v by_o 28._o be_v repeal_v and_o a_o new_a form_n of_o oath_n prescribe_v and_o extend_v to_o more_o person_n but_o never_o to_o all_o in_o general_n the_o same_o parliament_n cap._n 3._o enjoin_v that_o the_o stile_n of_o supreme_a head_n be_v receive_v and_o use_v and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o be_v do_v by_o henry_n viii_o in_o the_o point_n of_o supremacy_n by_o way_n of_o statute_n so_o that_o to_o say_v as_o master_n doctor_n do_v that_o all_o the_o subject_n in_o england_n be_v bind_v upon_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o believe_v the_o supremacy_n be_v a_o malicious_a fiction_n in_o two_o respect_n first_o touch_v the_o person_n enjoin_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n and_o liable_a to_o the_o punishment_n and_o then_o again_o as_o touch_v the_o offence_n for_o that_o belief_n alone_o which_o be_v a_o secret_a inclination_n of_o the_o mind_n know_v only_o to_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o not_o issuable_a nor_o tryable_a by_o any_o law_n humane_a shall_v be_v make_v a_o offence_n punishable_a by_o death_n be_v in_o itself_o so_o absurd_a as_o it_o can_v but_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o false_a imputation_n to_o charge_v our_o lawmaker_n therewithal_o last_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o henry_n the_o viii_o will_v never_o have_v make_v that_o statute_n if_o he_o can_v have_v get_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v divorce_v queen_n katherine_n that_o he_o may_v have_v marry_v anne_n boleine_n it_o be_v clear_a and_o all_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o if_o king_n henry_n will_v have_v join_v with_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n in_o the_o war_n of_o naples_n against_o charles_n the_o emperor_n the_o pope_n will_v not_o have_v stick_v to_o have_v give_v way_n to_o that_o divorce_n for_o the_o better_a procure_n of_o which_o combination_n he_o do_v not_o only_o
his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o but_o suppress_v that_o which_o make_v against_o he_o to_o keep_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n now_o if_o any_o man_n far_o desire_v his_o majesty_n meaning_n in_o calling_n rome_n the_o mother_n church_n he_o have_v full_o express_v himself_o in_o his_o premonition_n patriarch_n say_v he_o i_o know_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o i_o likewise_o reverence_v that_o institution_n for_o order_n sake_n and_o among_o they_o be_v a_o contention_n for_o the_o first_o place_n and_o for_o myself_o if_o that_o be_v yet_o the_o question_n i_o will_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n give_v my_o consent_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v the_o first_o seat_n i_o be_v a_o western_a king_n will_v go_v with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o his_o majesty_n meaning_n be_v and_o be_v to_o yield_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o other_o western_a bishop_n in_o case_n they_o shall_v meet_v i●_n council_n a_o priority_n in_o sit_v not_o a_o superiority_n in_o command_v a_o primacy_n or_o they_o precedency_n in_o order_n not_o a_o supremacy_n in_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v the_o mark_n which_o mr._n doctor_n drive_v at_o and_o from_o thence_o labour_v cunning_o but_o malicious_o to_o infer_v contrary_a to_o his_o majesty_n both_o mind_n and_o word_n i_o conclude_v this_o point_n with_o a_o reverend_a 237._o prelate_n his_fw-la vicarship_n to_o christ_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o strong_a and_o plain_a evidence_n than_o you_o have_v yet_o show_v before_o we_o may_v grant_v it_o and_o for_o his_o patriarkeship_n say_v he_o which_o you_o now_o take_v hold_v of_o by_o god_n law_n he_o have_v nne_v in_o this_o realm_n for_o ●ixe_v hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n he_o have_v none_o for_o the_o last_o six_o hundred_o as_o look_v to_o great_a matter_n he_o will_v have_v none_o above_o and_o against_o the_o sw●rd_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v he_o can_v have_v none_o to_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o oppression_n of_o his_o brethren_n in_o right_a reason_n and_o equity_n he_o shall_v have_v none_o you_o must_v seek_v far_o for_o subjection_n to_o his_o tribunal_n this_o land_n owe_v he_o none_o b._n c._n 18._o there_o be_v another_o statute_n in_o england_n make_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o confirm_v by_o your_o majesty_n that_o it_o be_v 2._o death_n for_o any_o english_a man_n to_o be_v in_o england_n be_v make_v a_o priest_n by_o authority_n derive_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o rome_n bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o can_v believe_v that_o i_o be_o a_o priest_n at_o all_o unless_o i_o be_v derive_v by_o authority_n from_o gregory_n the_o great_a from_o whence_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o england_n have_v their_o be_v if_o they_o have_v any_o be_v at_o all_o g._n h._n 18._o the_o statute_n intend_v be_v the_o 27._o of_o eliz._n cap._n 2._o which_o indeed_o in_o the_o body_n thereof_o have_v word_n sound_v to_o that_o purpose_n but_o the_o sense_n be_v malicious_o pervert_v and_o the_o inference_n thereupon_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v through_o that_o statute_n and_o consider_v all_o the_o part_n shall_v clear_o perceive_v that_o thereby_o none_o other_o priest_n be_v intend_v then_o popish_a priest_n make_v and_o ordain_v by_o popish_a bishop_n and_o not_o such_o as_o mr._n doctor_n be_v make_v in_o england_n by_o any_o of_o our_o bishop_n here_o though_o perhaps_o it_o be_v true_a that_o our_o bishop_n do_v derive_v their_o first_o authority_n from_o gregory_n which_o we_o do_v not_o yield_v unto_o consider_v that_o augustine_n from_o who_o they_o be_v pretend_v to_o derive_v it_o be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o he_o but_o by_o aetherius_n archbishop_n of_o arles_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v our_o own_o venerable_a bede_n for_o the_o title_n of_o the_o statute_n be_v a_o act_n against_o jesuit_n seminary_n priest_n and_o such_o other_o like_o disobedient_a person_n and_o the_o preamble_n of_o the_o act_n have_v these_o word_n whereas_o diverse_a person_n call_v or_o profess_v jesuit_n seminary_n priest_n and_o other_o priest_n which_o have_v be_v and_o fro●_n time_n to_o time_n be_v make_v in_o the_o part_n beyond_o the_o sea_n by_o or_o according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v of_o late_a year_n come_v and_o be_v send_v into_o england_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o if_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n praefatio_fw-la est_fw-la clavis_fw-la statuti_fw-la we_o shall_v interpret_v the_o body_n by_o the_o title_n or_o preamble_n howsoever_o the_o word_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o act_n be_v somewhat_o general_a yet_o what_o priest_n be_v intend_v by_o the_o lawmaker_n be_v evident_a enough_o and_o except_o m._n doctor_n be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n by_o shave_v anoint_v and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o a_o popish_a bishop_n and_o that_o since_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v fear_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o law_n b._n c._n 19_o there_o be_v another_o statute_n in_o like_a manner_n make_v and_o confirm_v that_o it_o be_v death_n to_o be_v reconcile_v by_o a_o catholic_a priest_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v our_o mother_n church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n in_o england_n can_v be_v save_v that_o continue_v wilful_o out_o of_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o persuade_v the_o people_n to_o be_v reconcile_v thereunto_o if_o possible_o they_o may_v g._n h._n 19_o this_o statute_n also_o be_v either_o purposely_o or_o ignorant_o mistake_v and_o be_v not_o distinct_a from_o that_o follow_a but_o be_v both_o one_o namely_o 23._o eliz._n cap._n 1._o the_o title_n of_o it_o be_v a_o act_n to_o retain_v the_o queen_n majesty_n subject_n in_o due_a obedience_n and_o the_o preamble_n recite_v that_o whereas_o diverse_a ill_a affect_a person_n have_v practise_v to_o withdraw_v the_o queen_n subject_n from_o their_o natural_a allegiance_n the_o purueiw_n of_o the_o act_n follow_v that_o all_o person_n which_o shall_v put_v in_o practice_n to_o ●bsolue_v persuade_v or_o withdraw_v any_o of_o the_o queen_n subject_n from_o their_o natural_a obedience_n to_o her_o majesty_n or_o to_o withdraw_v they_o for_o that_o intent_n from_o the_o religion_n establish_v and_o so_o forth_o shall_v be_v traitor_n and_o the_o person_n willing_o absolve_v or_o withdraw_v as_o aforesaid_a to_o be_v likewise_o a_o traitor_n so_o that_o the_o withdraw_n of_o the_o subject_n from_o their_o natural_a obedience_n or_o for_o that_o intent_n from_o the_o religion_n establish_v be_v the_o offence_n make_v treason_n and_o not_o simple_a exhort_v to_o the_o romish_a religion_n as_o be_v allege_v and_o yet_o to_o speak_v a_o truth_n i_o see_v not_o how_o any_o exhortation_n to_o a_o absolute_a submission_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o the_o will_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n jurisdiction_n which_o now_o be_v make_v the_o only_a essential_a form_n of_o that_o religion_n can_v well_o be_v sever_v from_o such_o a_o intent_n but_o rome_n you_o say_v be_v the_o mother_n church_n and_o no_o man_n in_o england_n can_v be_v save_v that_o continue_v wilful_o out_o of_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n where_o if_o you_o term_v it_o the_o mother_n church_n in_o that_o sense_n that_o his_o majesty_n do_v we_o embrace_v it_o but_o if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o she_o be_v our_o mother_n either_o in_o regard_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o first_o life_n or_o still_o shall_v receive_v the_o nourishment_n of_o religion_n from_o she_o we_o deny_v it_o our_o nation_n be_v first_o convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n who_o entomb_v the_o corpse_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o lie_v himself_o inter_v at_o glastenbury_n together_o with_o twelve_o disciple_n his_o assistant_n where_o they_o first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o gildas_n affirm_v in_o the_o life_n of_o aurelius_n ambrose_n and_o malmesbury_n in_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o antiquity_n of_o glastenbury_n write_v to_o henry_n of_o bloys_n brother_n to_o king_n steven_n and_o abbot_n of_o the_o same_o place_n and_o it_o be_v consent_v unto_o by_o the_o learned_a antiquary_n of_o late_a time_n as_o namely_o mr._n cambden_n john_n bale_n matthew_n parker_n polydore_n virgil_n and_o other_o ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o best_a approve_a and_o most_o ancient_a writer_n and_o withal_o consider_v our_o keep_n of_o easter_n and_o other_o ceremony_n be_v after_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o western_a at_o the_o come_n of_o austin_n i_o may_v very_o well_o conjecture_v that_o our_o
first_o conversion_n to_o christian_a religion_n be_v from_o the_o jew_n or_o grecian_n and_o not_o from_o the_o roman_n so_o that_o if_o rome_n be_v right_o term_v o●r_a mother_n church_n it_o must_v be_v in_o regard_n of_o late_a supply_n from_o eleutherius_fw-la and_o gregory_n not_o of_o our_o first_o conversion_n howsoever_o the_o holy_a city_n be_v now_o become_v a_o harlot_n we_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o reverence_v she_o as_o a_o mother_n but_o as_o a_o strumpet_n till_o she_o repent_v and_o amend_v to_o shun●e_v all_o union_n with_o she_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o give_v they_o their_o due_a praise_n for_o their_o devotion_n and_o zeal_n and_o enter_v at_o last_o into_o the_o rejection_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o unbelief_n he_o warn_v express_o the_o roman_n in_o these_o word_n etc._n boast_v not_o thyself_o against_o the_o branch_n and_o if_o thou_o boast_v thyself_o thou_o bear_v not_o the_o root_n but_o the_o root_n thou_o thou_o will_v say_v the_o branch_n be_v break_v off_o that_o i_o may_v be_v graft_v in_o well_o through_o infidelity_n they_o be_v break_v off_o and_o thou_o stand_v by_o faith_n be_v not_o high_a mind_v but_o fear_v for_o if_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n take_v heed_n lest_o he_o spare_v not_o thou_o behold_v therefore_o the_o goodness_n and_o severity_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o which_o have_v fall_v severity_n but_o towards_o thou_o goodness_n if_o thou_o continue_v in_o his_o goodness_n otherwise_o thou_o also_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o now_o whether_o the_o apostle_n speak_v general_o to_o the_o gentile_n and_o inclusive_o to_o the_o roman_n or_o namely_o to_o the_o roman_n and_o proportionable_o to_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o we_o one_o of_o the_o twain_o he_o must_v needs_o origen_n say_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o paul_n i_o say_v to_o you_o gentile_n now_o he_o plain_o turn_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o gentile_n but_o chief_o to_o those_o of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o believe_v s._n paul_n speak_v then_o to_o the_o roman_n no_o man_n may_v except_v the_o roman_n and_o they_o be_v include_v his_o admonition_n to_o they_o if_o there_o can_v be_v no_o danger_n in_o they_o of_o swerve_v from_o the_o faith_n be_v utter_o superfluous_a and_o the_o condition_n imply_v ridiculous_a and_o the_o commination_n odious_a and_o the_o reason_n frivolous_a now_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n there_o threaten_v we_o find_v come_v to_o pass_v so_o that_o we_o can_v we_o dare_v not_o join_v hand_n with_o she_o nay_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o believe_v that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o continue_v out_o of_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o constant_o believe_v that_o the_o mean_n to_o be_v save_v be_v to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o church_n till_o she_o separate_v herself_o from_o her_o error_n special_o since_o in_o your_o understanding_n the_o continue_v in_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o it_o and_o if_o none_o can_v be_v save_v without_o that_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o your_o honest_a brethren_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n who_o you_o profess_v you_o be_v so_o far_o from_o condemn_v as_o you_o do_v account_v yourself_o one_o of_o they_o what_o of_o so_o many_o million_o of_o soul_n in_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a christian_a church_n more_o in_o number_n by_o many_o degree_n than_o those_o that_o yet_o continue_v in_o that_o visible_a unity_n and_o better_a both_o in_o life_n and_o belief_n than_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v it_o or_o the_o visible_a head_n himself_o of_o it_o b._n c._n 20._o there_o be_v another_o statute_n in_o like_a manner_n make_v and_o confirm_v that_o it_o be_v death_n to_o exhort_v the_o people_n of_o england_n to_o catholic_a religion_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o religion_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a religion_n which_o i_o will_v particular_o justify_v from_o point_n to_o point_n if_o god_n give_v time_n and_o opportunity_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o persuade_v the_o people_n thereunto_o g._n h._n 20._o for_o the_o statute_n here_o pretend_v i_o have_v already_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v none_o other_o than_o a_o branch_n of_o the_o former_a and_o for_o your_o promise_n of_o justify_v from_o point_n to_o point_v the_o religion_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v perform_v when_o we_o shall_v see_v it_o publish_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o a_o confutation_n will_v be_v find_v as_o particular_a and_o plain_a and_o more_o true_a than_o your_o justification_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o can_v but_o wonder_v what_o you_o can_v say_v more_o herein_o then_o have_v often_o be_v say_v by_o as_o earnest_n and_o more_o learned_a proctor_n of_o that_o church_n then_o yourself_o beside_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v you_o shall_v be_v sudden_o expert_a and_o so_o peremptory_o confident_a in_o all_o the_o controversed_a point_n except_o you_o be_v resolve_v in_o most_o of_o they_o before_o your_o part_n hence_o i_o remember_v duke_n humphrey_n discover_v a_o notable_a piece_n of_o knavery_n in_o a_o beggar_n who_o pretend_v blindness_n from_o his_o birth_n undertake_v to_o judge_v of_o colour_n instant_o upon_o the_o recovery_n of_o his_o sight_n this_o your_o vain_a offer_n to_o justify_v all_o point_n in_o controversy_n present_o upon_o your_o breathe_n of_o outlandish_a air_n can_v but_o give_v we_o just_a occasion_n to_o suspect_v the_o like_a hyopocrisie_n last_o if_o the_o religion_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o all_o point_v the_o only_a true_a religion_n why_o will_v his_o holiness_n permit_v the_o exercise_n of_o we_o with_o little_a or_o no_o alteration_n as_o afterward_o you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n upon_o condition_n his_o majesty_n on_o the_o other_o side_n will_v admit_v of_o his_o supremacy_n and_o the_o mass_n b._n c._n 21._o it_o may_v be_v these_o be_v not_o all_o several_a statute_n some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o book_n for_o i_o have_v not_o my_o book_n about_o i_o to_o search_v but_o i_o be_o sure_a all_o of_o they_o do_v make_v such_o felony_n and_o treason_n as_o be_v the_o great_a virtue_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o such_o as_o i_o must_v confess_v myself_o i_o can_v choose_v if_o i_o live_v in_o england_n but_o endeavour_n to_o be_v subject_n guilty_a of_o and_o then_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v they_o puritan_n enough_o to_o make_v a_o jury_n against_o i_o and_o there_o will_v not_o want_v a_o itenerant_a justice_n of_o peace_n to_o give_v sentence_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v worse_o than_o the_o persecution_n itself_o they_o will_v all_o swear_v solemn_o that_o d._n carier_n be_v not_o put_v to_o death_n for_o catholic_a religion_n but_o for_o felony_n and_o treason_n i_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o protection_n against_o the_o cruelty_n of_o those_o law_n if_o your_o majesty_n be_v resolve_v upon_o no_o condition_n whatsoever_o to_o have_v society_n at_o all_o nor_o no_o communion_n at_o all_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o while_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v i_o dare_v not_o return_v home_o again_o but_o i_o can_v be_v altogether_o out_o of_o like_a hope_n of_o better_a news_n before_o i_o die_v as_o long_o as_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n do_v rejoice_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n to_o christ_n and_o do_v know_v that_o your_o majesty_n by_o you●_n angel_n birth_n have_v so_o great_a a_o interest_n in_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n as_o you_o shall_v never_o cease_v to_o have_v until_o you_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o such_o a_o mother_n as_o will_v rejoice_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o your_o extraordinary_a conversion_n and_o therefore_o i_o assure_v myself_o that_o she_o with_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v pray_v that_o your_o majesty_n before_o you_o die_v may_v be_v militant_a in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v head_n triumphant_a and_o in_o this_o hope_n i_o be_o go_v before_o to_o join_v my_o prayer_n with_o they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o do_v humble_o pray_v your_o majesty_n grant_v to_o pardon_v i_o for_o do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o avoid_v and_o to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o live_v where_o i_o hope_v short_o to_o die_v unless_o i_o may_v hope_v to_o do_v your_o majesty_n service_n service_n and_o without_o the_o
prejudice_n of_o any_o be_v honest_a man_n in_o england_n to_o see_v some_o unity_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o her_o mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o now_o have_v declare_v the_o mean_n of_o my_o coversion_n to_o catholic_a religion_n i_o will_v brief_o also_o show_v unto_o you_o the_o hope_n i_o have_v to_o do_v your_o majesty_n no_o ill_a service_n therein_o g._n h._n 21._o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o those_o statute_n which_o you_o allege_v be_v not_o several_a in_o themselves_o but_o member_n of_o the_o same_o and_o it_o appear_v well_o though_o you_o have_v not_o profess_v it_o that_o at_o the_o write_n hereof_o you_o have_v not_o your_o book_n about_o you_o you_o affirm_v thing_n uncertain_a so_o confident_o and_o thing_n certain_a so_o false_o but_o you_o be_v sure_a you_o say_v they_o make_v such_o felony_n and_o treason_n as_o be_v the_o great_a virtue_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n whereas_o we_o be_v more_o sure_a that_o the_o great_a virtue_n and_o fat_a sacrifice_n and_o short_a cut_n to_o heaven_n as_o they_o be_v now_o esteem_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o primiti●e_a church_n hold_v none_o other_o but_o murder_n and_o parricide_n and_o felony_n and_o treason_n thou_o do_v promise_v say_v 92_o augustine_n to_o patilian_n that_o thou_o will_v reckon_v many_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o judge_n which_o by_o persecute_v you_o perish_v and_o conceal_v the_o emperor_n thou_o meane_v two_o judge_n or_o deputy_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o name_v the_o emperor_n of_o thy_o communion_n be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o be_v accuse_v as_o guilty_a of_o treason_n where_o be_v your_o courage_n which_o fear_v not_o to_o kill_v yourselves_o to_o say_v the_o emperor_n perish_v for_o persecute_v be_v treason_n in_o his_o time_n in_o our_o age_n you_o think_v it_o much_o that_o reproach_v of_o prince_n as_o tyrant_n and_o heretic_n and_o aid_v the_o pope_n with_o your_o persuasion_n absolution_n and_o rebellion_n to_o take_v their_o crown_n from_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v or_o adjudge_v treason_n how_o beit_a a_o certain_a truth_n it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o conspiracy_n so_o pernicious_a and_o dangerous_a to_o the_o state_n as_o that_o which_o be_v whisper_v into_o man_n ear_n and_o convey_v into_o their_o heart_n upon_o a_o sense_n of_o devotion_n and_o outward_o cover_v with_o a_o show_n of_o religion_n notwithstanding_o as_o true_a it_o be_v that_o in_o england_n none_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o catholic_a religion_n no_o nor_o for_o the_o romish_a which_o you_o call_v catholic_a as_o have_v be_v at_o large_a justify_v in_o a_o book_n write_v by_o a_o strengthen_v peer_n of_o the_o realm_n entitle_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o england_n and_o be_v verify_v by_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n in_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o pope_n first_o breve_fw-la where_o he_o not_o only_o clear_v himself_o at_o large_a from_o this_o imputation_n but_o the_o late_a queen_n that_o bless_a defunct_a lady_n as_o he_o there_o call_v she_o in_o who_o proceed_n say_v he_o who_o list_v to_o compare_v with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n the_o manifold_a intend_a invasion_n against_o her_o whole_a kingdom_n the_o foreign_a practice_n the_o internal_a public_a rebellion_n the_o private_a plot_n and_o machination_n poison_n murder_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o device_n daily_o set_v abroach_o and_o all_o these_o ware_n continual_o foster_v and_o foment_v from_o rome_n together_o with_o the_o continual_a corrupt_v of_o her_o subject_n aswell_o by_o temporal_a bribe_n as_o by_o fair_a and_o spacious_a promise_n of_o eternal_a felicity_n and_o nothing_o but_o book_n upon_o book_n public_o set_v forth_o by_o her_o fugitive_n for_o approbation_n of_o so_o holy_a design_n who_o list_v i_o say_v with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n to_o look_v on_o the_o one_o part_n upon_o these_o infinite_a and_o intolerable_a temptation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n upon_o the_o just_a yet_o moderate_a punishment_n of_o a_o part_n of_o these_o heinous_a offender_n shall_v easy_o see_v that_o that_o bless_a defunct_a lady_n be_v as_o free_v from_o persecution_n as_o th●y_o shall_v free_v these_o hellish_a instrument_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o martyrdom_n and_n against_o his_o majesty_n maintain_v the_o same_o in_o his_o premonition_n to_o christian_a prince_n not_o far_o from_o the_o conclusion_n as_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o punishment_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o romish_a catholic_n i_o do_v constant_o maintain_v that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o my_o apology_n that_o no_o man_n either_o in_o my_o time_n or_o the_o late_a queen_n ever_o die_v here_o for_o his_o conscience_n for_o let_v he_o be_v never_o so_o devout_a a_o papist_n nay_o though_o he_o profess_v the_o same_o never_o so_o constant_o his_o life_n be_v in_o no_o danger_n by_o the_o law_n if_o he_o break_v not_o out_o into_o some_o outward_a act_n express_o against_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n or_o plot_v some_o unlawful_a or_o dangerous_a practice_n or_o attempt_v priest_n and_o popish_a churchman_n only_o except_v that_o receive_v order_n beyond_o the_o sea_n who_o for_o the_o manifold_a treasonable_a practice_n that_o they_o have_v kindle_v and_o plot_v in_o this_o country_n be_v discharge_v to_o come_v home_o again_o under_o pain_n of_o treason_n after_o their_o receive_n of_o the_o say_a order_n abroad_o and_o yet_o without_o some_o other_o guilt_n in_o they_o then_o their_o bare_a home_n come_v have_v none_o of_o they_o be_v ever_o put_v to_o death_n hitherto_o his_o majesty_n 113._o whereas_o on_o the_o otherside_n we_o just_o complain_v that_o they_o execute_v our_o professor_n though_o stranger_n for_o religion_n and_o only_o for_o religion_n and_o in_o that_o most_o bloody_a and_o barbarous_a manner_n special_o where_o the_o inquisition_n be_v in_o force_n that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n be_v drink_v and_o yet_o not_o fill_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o whereas_o you_o impute_v cruelty_n to_o our_o law_n what_o tragical_a cruelty_n be_v exercise_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n even_o upon_o woman_n and_o child_n nay_o which_o be_v most_o odious_a and_o unnatural_a upon_o woman_n great_a with_o child_n i_o pray_v god_n as_o well_o forget_v as_o some_o yet_o alive_a well_o remember_v now_o as_o you_o hold_v and_o handle_v our_o martyr_n worse_o than_o traitor_n so_o your_o most_o notorious_a traitor_n must_v stand_v register_v in_o the_o calendar_n of_o martyr_n not_o many_o day_n before_o garnet_n suffer_v there_o come_v to_o visit_v he_o at_o his_o lodging_n in_o the_o tower_n certain_a choice_n divine_n among_o who_o the_o chief_a be_v my_o lord_n the_o bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n of_o lincoln_n and_o leichfield_n as_o now_o they_o be_v among_o other_o question_n one_o of_o they_o propose_v this_o whether_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n af●er_v his_o execution_n shall_v declare_v he_o a_o martyr_n he_o do_v approve_v thereof_o he_o deep_o sigh_v and_o shrink_v up_o his_o shoulder_n make_v this_o answer_n me_n a_o martyr_n o_o what_o a_o martyr_n but_o the_o church_n will_v n●uer_o do_v it_o and_o i_o pray_v god_n it_o be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o think_v upon_o indeed_o if_o i_o have_v die_v for_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o unhappy_a man_n have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v i_o in_o confession_n i_o may_v perhaps_o seem_v not_o unworthy_a the_o honour_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o merit_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o now_o as_o the_o case_n stand_v i_o must_v acknowledge_v my_o fault_n and_o confess_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n pronounce_v against_o i_o most_o just_a then_o again_o double_v and_o treble_v his_o sigh_n and_o show_v token_n of_o unfeigned_a sorrow_n i_o will_v to_o god_n say_v he_o what_o be_v do_v may_v be_v undo_v i_o can_v wish_v that_o any_o other_o chance_n have_v befall_v i_o rather_o than_o my_o name_n shall_v thus_o be_v stain_v with_o the_o blot_n of_o treason_n which_o offence_n though_o most_o grievous_a yet_o i_o distrust_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v wash_v away_o with_o the_o tear_n of_o repentance_n and_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v mercy_n on_o i_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o if_o i_o have_v all_o the_o world_n in_o my_o power_n to_o bestow_v i_o will_v willing_o give_v all_o that_o i_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o imputation_n of_o treason_n which_o lie_v heavy_a upon_o my_o conscience_n &_o shall_v stand_v record_v in_o the_o sentence_n of_o my_o condemnation_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o be_v he_o record_v a_o martyr_n apologize_v by_o eudemon_n and_o by_o delrio_n paralel_v with_o denis_n the_o areopagite_n what_o will_v mr._n doctor_n say_v to_o this_o now_o have_v we_o
if_o you_o pretend_v both_o and_o in_o the_o end_n perform_v neither_o it_o be_v the_o worst_a piece_n of_o service_n you_o can_v do_v b_o i_o suppose_v there_o be_v no_o governor_n in_o the_o world_n who_o deserve_v that_o name_n but_o that_o a_o chief_a part_n of_o his_o care_n be_v to_o make_v his_o subject_n at_o leastwise_o moral_o good_a that_o so_o he_o may_v find_v they_o the_o more_o obedient_a and_o some_o of_o those_o very_a heathen_a kingdom_n which_o s._n augustine_n describe_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n special_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n yield_v more_o rare_a example_n of_o moral_a goodness_n namely_o of_o justice_n and_o temperance_n than_o it_o do_v at_o this_o day_n though_o it_o profess_v christ._n and_o for_o the_o serve_v of_o the_o time_n and_o turn_n of_o those_o that_o bear_v the_o sway_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o as_o many_o may_v be_v find_v in_o those_o kingdom_n which_o you_o call_v catholic_a who_o be_v as_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o do_v it_o for_o their_o own_o advantage_n as_o among_o the_o heathen_a themselves_o c_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o whole_a state_n extend_v to_o every_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o same_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o all_o belong_v to_o the_o same_o body_n but_o that_o the_o happiness_n of_o every_o particular_a member_n shall_v reach_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o state_n be_v not_o alike_o certain_a but_o to_o grant_v both_o i_o must_v confess_v my_o dulness_n i_o conceive_v not_o how_o from_o thence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o virtue_n of_o a_o good_a man_n and_o a_o good_a citizen_n be_v always_o and_o necessary_o the_o same_o once_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o ●_o aristotle_n who_o defend_v the_o one_o deny_v the_o other_o &_o purgatory_n bodin_n both_o a_o christian_n &_o a_o catholic_a of_o your_o own_o in_o my_o judgement_n true_o observe_v that_o the_o best_a man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v the_o worst_a statesman_n in_o as_o much_o as_o be_v carry_v up_o to_o heaven_n by_o contemplation_n they_o shun_v society_n and_o seek_v out_o desert_n and_o solitary_a place_n for_o their_o abode_n and_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o your_o monk_n and_o friar_n and_o hermit_n and_o anchorite_n who_o presume_v by_o their_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n not_o only_o to_o merit_v for_o themselves_o but_o to_o supererogate_v for_o other_o what_o good_a they_o do_v as_o member_n for_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o only_o by_o mean_n of_o that_o imaginary_a supererogation_n which_o be_v no_o less_o hard_a for_o a_o wise_a man_n to_o believe_v then_o for_o a_o good_a to_o perform_v but_o to_o let_v pass_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o both_o those_o position_n and_o the_o dependence_n of_o the_o late_a upon_o the_o former_a your_o inference_n thereupon_o to_o justify_v yourself_o and_o your_o own_o proceed_n be_v both_o in_o itself_o more_o untrue_a and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o premise_n more_o loose_a and_o inconsequent_a in_o as_o much_o as_o by_o leave_v your_o station_n and_o betake_v yourself_o unto_o and_o consult_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o state_n for_o the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o both_o which_o you_o mask_v under_o the_o glorious_a title_n of_o honour_n of_o our_o saviour_n common_a salvation_n unity_n peace_n reconciliation_n service_n to_o his_o majesty_n good_a of_o his_o kingdom_n you_o neither_o perform_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a common_a wealth_n man_n not_o yet_o of_o a_o honest_a man_n &_o consequent_o endanger_v as_o far_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v not_o only_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o state_n in_o which_o you_o live_v &_o church_n in_o which_o you_o be_v baptize_v but_o of_o your_o own_o together_o with_o they_o but_o above_o all_o a_o marvel_v it_o be_v that_o acknowledge_v yourself_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n you_o notwithstanding_o still_o profess_v yourself_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o your_o common_a opinion_n of_o we_o be_v that_o among_o we_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a call_n to_o the_o ministry_n no_o succession_n or_o confer_v of_o holy_a order_n no_o ephod_n no_o teraphim_n but_o that_o our_o minister_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o layman_n and_o none_o other_o of_o this_o cunning_a deal_n i_o can_v conceive_v none_o other_o reason_n but_o that_o you_o may_v with_o more_o ease_n and_o least_o suspicion_n convey_v your_o poison_n into_o the_o reader_n mind_n b._n c._n 2._o and_o although_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o man_n of_o my_o profession_n to_o respect_v only_a matter_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o another_o world_n yet_o because_o this_o world_n be_v make_v for_o that_o other_o prince_n i_o have_v not_o regard_v my_o own_o estate_n that_o i_o may_v respect_v your_o majesty_n therein_o and_o after_o long_a and_o serious_a meditation_n what_o religion_n may_v most_o honour_v your_o majesty_n even_o in_o this_o world_n i_o have_v conceive_v undoubted_a hope_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o religion_n that_o can_v procure_v true_a honour_n and_o itself_o security_n to_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o posterity_n in_o this_o world_n but_o the_o true_a catholic_a roman_n religion_n which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o whereby_o all_o your_o glorious_a predecessor_n have_v be_v protect_v advance_v and_o protect_v on_o earth_n and_o be_v everlasting_o bless_v in_o purgatory_n heaven_n g._n h._n 2._o the_o devil_n howbeit_o he_o be_v rather_o a_o politician_n then_o of_o any_o other_o profession_n yet_o when_o he_o come_v to_o tempt_v our_o lord_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o divine_a but_o you_o in_o tempt_v the_o lord_n anoint_v lie_v aside_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o divine_a and_o whole_o take_v upon_o you_o the_o person_n of_o a_o politician_n but_o herein_o if_o i_o shall_v tell_v you_o you_o play_v phormioes_n part_n before_o hannibal_n you_o will_v think_v your_o deep_a policy_n much_o impeach_v now_o as_o you_o differ_v from_o the_o devil_n in_o that_o he_o turn_v himself_o in_o appearance_n into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n be_v indeed_o a_o spirit_n of_o darkness_n but_o you_o be_v a_o angel_n in_o profession_n turn_v yourself_o into_o a_o tempter_n so_o in_o this_o you_o both_o agree_v as_o if_o you_o have_v learn_v your_o method_n from_o he_o and_o propose_v he_o as_o your_o pattern_n that_o as_o he_o be_v beat_v from_o scripture_n betake_v himself_o as_o be_v his_o last_o refuge_n to_o the_o show_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o to_o our_o saviour_n promise_v he_o all_o if_o he_o will_v but_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_n so_o you_o perceive_v belike_o all_o other_o argument_n to_o be_v spend_v in_o vain_a at_o length_n you_o purpose_v to_o try_v what_o use_n may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o devil_n last_o motive_n by_o promise_v his_o majesty_n all_o worldly_a honour_n and_o security_n for_o himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n if_o he_o will_v but_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v your_o lord_n the_o pope_n but_o as_o the_o devil_n promise_v that_o which_o be_v none_o of_o he_o to_o give_v so_o do_v your_o lord_n too_o in_o the_o dispose_n of_o those_o kingdom_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o which_o no_o way_n belong_v unto_o he_o except_o it_o be_v by_o the_o title_n of_o be_v heir_n apparent_a to_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n but_o be_v it_o not_o for_o fear_v of_o interrupt_v of_o your_o deep_a and_o serious_a meditation_n i_o shall_v make_v bold_a to_o put_v you_o to_o the_o question_n whether_o these_o be_v the_o bait_n that_o saint_n peter_n angle_v with_o to_o catch_v soul_n or_o the_o weapon_n that_o saint_n paul_n fight_v with_o when_o he_o profess_v that_o they_o be_v not_o carnal_a but_o mighty_a through_o god_n to_o cast_v down_o hold_v they_o propose_v not_o honour_n and_o security_n to_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n but_o hazard_n and_o baseness_n i_o insist_v the_o long_o upon_o this_o argument_n because_o the_o whole_a follow_a discourse_n be_v stuff_v with_o nothing_o else_o but_o reason_n of_o this_o nature_n as_o if_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o religion_n not_o the_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v regard_v as_o those_o secular_a and_o temporal_a commodity_n which_o sometime_o attend_v it_o as_o the_o shadow_n do_v the_o body_n his_o majesty_n own_o word_n to_o his_o son_n of_o fresh_a &_o bless_a memory_n touch_v this_o point_n be_v most_o remarkable_a worthy_a to_o be_v write_v in_o letter_n of_o gold_n and_o to_o be_v engrave_v in_o a_o pillar_n of_o brass_n or_o marble_n if_o say_v he_o my_o conscience_n have_v not_o resolve_v i_o that_o all_o my_o religion_n present_o profess_v by_o i_o and_o
her_o singular_a virtue_n and_o excellency_n erect_v to_o her_o everlasting_a memory_n a_o princely_a monument_n in_o the_o magnificent_a chapel_n of_o her_o grandfather_n henry_n the_o seven_o inscribe_v with_o this_o ensue_a epitaph_n of_o her_o greatness_n sacred_a unto_o memory_n religion_n to_o its_o primitive_a sincerity_n restore_v peace_n thorough_o settle_v coin_v to_o the_o true_a value_n refine_v rebellion_n at_o home_n extinguish_v france_n near_o ruin_n by_o intestine_a mischief_n relieve_v netherlands_n support_v spain_n armado_n vanquish_v ireland_n with_o spaniard_n expulsion_n and_o traitor_n coercion_n quiet_v both_o university_n revenue_n by_o a_o law_n of_o provision_n exceed_o augment_v final_o all_o england_n enrich_v and_o xlv_o year_n most_o prudent_o govern_v elizabeth_n a_o queen_n a_o conqueress_n a_o triumpher_n the_o most_o devote_a to_o piety_n the_o most_o happy_a after_o lxx_o year_n of_o her_o life_n quiet_o by_o death_n depart_v have_v leave_v here_o in_o this_o most_o famous_a collegiate_n church_n which_o by_o she_o be_v establish_v and_o refound_v these_o remain_v of_o her_o mortality_n until_o at_o christ_n call_n they_o shall_v again_o rise_v immortal_a she_o die_v the_o twenty-four_o of_o march_n the_o year_n of_o salvation_n mdcii_o of_o her_o reign_n xlv_o of_o her_o age_n lxx_o for_o a_o eternal_a memorial_n unto_o elizabeth_n queen_n of_o england_n france_n and_o ireland_n daughter_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o grandchild_n to_o k._n hen._n the_o vii_o great_a grandchild_n to_o k._n ed._n the_o four_o the_o mother_n of_o this_o her_o country_n the_o nurse_n of_o religion_n and_o learning_n for_o perfect_a skill_n of_o very_a many_o language_n for_o glorious_a endowment_n as_o well_o of_o mind_n as_o body_n and_o for_o regal_a virtue_n beyond_o her_o sex_n a_o prince_n incomparable_a james_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n king_n inheritor_n both_o of_o her_o virtue_n and_o kingdom_n to_o she_o so_o well_o deserve_v pious_o have_v this_o erect_v which_o i_o have_v the_o rather_o set_v down_o at_o large_a aswell_o for_o the_o reverence_n i_o bear_v her_o memory_n in_o who_o reign_n it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o part_n of_o my_o comfort_n that_o i_o be_v bear_v and_o baptize_v as_o to_o commend_v to_o posterity_n his_o majesty_n royal_a disposition_n in_o give_v her_o right_a so_o far_o as_o be_v it_o not_o authorize_v by_o his_o princely_a testimony_n future_a age_n will_v think_v it_o fabulous_a but_o special_o to_o show_v that_o he_o ascribe_v all_o her_o honour_n and_o prosperity_n not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o mr._n doctor_n do_v or_o to_o the_o religion_n by_o he_o call_v catholic_a but_o to_o her_o devotion_n and_o piety_n and_o the_o restore_n of_o religion_n to_o its_o primitive_a sincerity_n for_o with_o it_o as_o she_o make_v the_o entrance_n of_o her_o reign_n so_o do_v he_o of_o her_o epitaph_n both_o esteem_v it_o as_o the_o head_n spring_n from_o whence_o all_o that_o ensue_a happiness_n do_v flow_v and_o be_v derive_v neither_o can_v it_o in_o my_o understanding_n be_v otherwise_o ascribe_v to_o rome_n then_o in_o grant_v that_o the_o reputation_n and_o renown_n which_o she_o win_v be_v in_o part_n gain_v and_o much_o increase_v by_o escape_v through_o god_n especial_a providence_n ever_o watchful_a over_o she_o the_o manifold_a treason_n and_o frustrate_v the_o barbarous_a attempt_n that_o be_v hatch_v at_o rome_n and_o to_o be_v act_v by_o romish_a vassal_n aswell_o against_o her_o person_n as_o estate_n which_o make_v her_o great_a enemy_n confess_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v here_o and_o sure_o have_v not_o rome_n endeavour_v by_o might_n and_o main_a to_o quench_v and_o eclipse_v her_o light_n witness_v the_o bull_n of_o clement_n the_o 7_o while_o she_o be_v yet_o in_o her_o mother_n womb_n and_o afterward_o of_o pius_n and_o sixtus_n and_o cardinal_n comoes_n letter_n to_o parrie_n and_o cardinal_n allens_n book_n to_o the_o nobility_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1588._o i_o be_o clear_o of_o opinion_n the_o beam_n of_o her_o honour_n have_v not_o shine_v so_o clear_o and_o glorious_o to_o the_o world_n as_o they_o do_v last_o those_o singularity_n which_o you_o bring_v of_o be_v a_o woman_n a_o maiden_n queen_n and_o the_o last_o of_o her_o race_n they_o be_v indeed_o advantage_n of_o admiration_n but_o such_o in_o my_o judgement_n as_o rather_o show_v that_o she_o be_v bless_v from_o heaven_n then_o by_o any_o earthly_a mean_n in_o as_o much_o as_o live_v and_o die_v both_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o husband_n and_o hope_v of_o a_o heir_n from_o her_o own_o body_n she_o notwithstanding_o project_v and_o effect_v so_o great_a matter_n and_o so_o much_o good_a to_o the_o state_n she_o govern_v b._n c._n 5._o as_o for_o the_o honour_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o infidel_n as_o it_o reach_v no_o far_a than_o chapter_n this_o life_n so_o it_o have_v no_o beginning_n from_o above_o this_o world_n and_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v s._n ambrose_n in_o luc._n 4._o &_o alib●_fw-la those_o honour_n be_v donation_n confer_v rather_o by_o god_n permission_n than_o his_o donation_n be_v indeed_o ordain_v and_o order_v by_o his_o providence_n but_o for_o the_o 17._o sin_n of_o the_o people_n confer_v by_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o turkish_a empire_n have_v now_o continue_v a_o long_a time_n but_o they_o have_v other_o principle_n of_o state_n to_o stand_v upon_o the_o continual_a guard_n of_o a_o avouch_v hundred_o thousand_o soldier_n whereof_o most_o of_o they_o know_v none_o other_o parent_n but_o the_o emperor_n the_o tenure_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n who_o hold_v all_o in_o capite_fw-la ad_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la domini_fw-la by_o the_o service_n of_o the_o sword_n their_o enjoin_v silence_n and_o reverence_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o their_o facility_n in_o admit_v other_o religion_n aswell_o as_o their_o own_o to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o to_o tolerate_v they_o so_o that_o they_o be_v good_a subject_n government_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v principle_n of_o great_a importance_n to_o increase_v a_o empire_n and_o to_o maintain_v a_o temporal_a state_n but_o there_o be_v no_o state_n in_o christendom_n that_o may_v endure_v these_o principle_n unless_o they_o mean_v to_o turn_v turk_n also_o which_o although_o some_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v yet_o they_o will_v neither_o hold_v in_o capite_fw-la nor_o hold_v their_o peace_n in_o religion_n nor_o suffer_v their_o king_n to_o have_v such_o a_o guard_n about_o he_o nor_o admit_v of_o catholic_a religion_n so_o much_o as_o the_o turk_n do_v g._n h._n 5._o you_o may_v with_o the_o turk_n aswell_o have_v join_v the_o king_n of_o china_n the_o sophy_n of_o persia_n the_o chame_n of_o tartary_n the_o great_a magore_n presbyter_n john_n &_o the_o like_a who_o estate_n few_o christian_a prince_n exceed_v or_o can_v match_v in_o riches_n and_o greatness_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o estate_n confer_v on_o they_o by_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n neither_o ambrose_n affirm_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o in_o itself_o true_a saint_n ambrose_n his_o word_n be_v these_o a_o deo_fw-la potestatum_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la amalo_fw-la ambitio_fw-la potestatis_fw-la the_o ordain_v of_o the_o power_n be_v from_o god_n but_o the_o ambitious_a desire_n not_o the_o confer_v of_o it_o from_o the_o devil_n indeed_o it_o be_v his_o challenge_n in_o that_o chapter_n to_o whosoever_o i_o will_v i_o give_v it_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o wisdom_n 13._o in_o the_o 8_o the_o of_o the_o proverb_n by_o i_o king_n reign_v and_o saint_a paul_n teach_v we_o there_o be_v no_o power_n such_o as_o himself_o live_v under_o but_o of_o god_n to_o which_o purpose_n it_o be_v well_o say_v of_o s._n augustine_n who_o m._n doctor_n pretend_v to_o follow_v most_o among_o the_o ancient_n qui_fw-la dedit_fw-la mario_n 21._o ipse_fw-la &_o cesari_n qui_fw-la augusto_fw-la ipse_fw-la &_o neroni_n qui_fw-la vespasiano_n vel_fw-la patri_fw-la vel_fw-la filio_fw-la suavissimis_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la ipse_fw-la &_o domitiano_n crudelissimo_fw-la &_o ne_fw-la per_fw-la singulos_fw-la ire_n necesse_fw-la sit_fw-la qui_fw-la constantino_n christiano_n ipse_fw-la apostatae_fw-la juliano_n he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o marius_n give_v it_o to_o caesar_n he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o augustus_n give_v it_o to_o nero_n he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o vespasian_n the_o father_n or_o his_o son_n most_o sweet_a emperor_n give_v it_o also_o to_o domitian_n the_o most_o cruel_a and_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o reckon_v up_o the_o rest_n in_o particular_a he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o constantine_n the_o christian_n give_v it_o to_o julian_n the_o
apostata_fw-la so_o then_o in_o saint_n augustine_n opinion_n god_n do_v not_o only_o order_v those_o honour_n by_o his_o providence_n as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o but_o confer_v they_o by_o his_o bounty_n neither_o have_v we_o any_o reason_n to_o think_v but_o that_o he_o who_o call_v cyrus_n his_o shepherd_n and_o his_o anoint_v and_o give_v he_o the_o treasure_n of_o darkness_n and_o assure_a nabuchadonosor_n by_o his_o prophet_n that_o himself_o have_v give_v to_o he_o a_o kingdom_n and_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o glory_n may_v as_o true_o be_v say_v to_o have_v confer_v that_o government_n upon_o the_o turk_n which_o now_o he_o hold_v but_o it_o seem_v you_o aim_v through_o the_o turk_n side_n to_o strike_v at_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o through_o she_o at_o king_n james_n infidel_n and_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a language_n rank_v together_o so_o that_o their_o king_n dome_n be_v not_o by_o god_n donation_n they_o may_v lie_v loose_a and_o by_o occasion_n fall_v as_o it_o be_v by_o excheate_n to_o his_o holiness_n gift_n your_o reason_n of_o the_o largeness_n and_o long_a continuance_n of_o the_o turkish_a empire_n be_v as_o far_o from_o the_o purpose_n as_o your_o whole_a discourse_n be_v from_o any_o sound_a divinity_n for_o not_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o sift_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o which_o in_o some_o of_o they_o may_v not_o unjust_o be_v question_v your_o inference_n be_v that_o such_o principle_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n to_o increase_v and_o maintain_v a_o temporal_a estate_n but_o the_o point_n be_v whether_o any_o can_v be_v of_o sufficient_a importance_n to_o uphold_v any_o estate_n when_o god_n for_o the_o dishonour_n of_o his_o christ_n be_v purpose_v to_o ruin_v it_o and_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v of_o a_o fruitful_a land_n to_o make_v it_o barren_a for_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o people_n that_o dwell_v therein_o before_o you_o speak_v of_o a_o supernatural_a judgement_n of_o god_n in_o destruction_n and_o here_o of_o a_o natural_a and_o humane_a invention_n for_o preservation_n which_o can_v hold_v no_o more_o proportion_n with_o the_o former_a than_o a_o venice_n glass_n with_o a_o iron_n pot_n or_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n with_o a_o brazen_a last_o what_o state_n you_o shall_v mean_v that_o be_v willing_a to_o become_v turkish_a i_o know_v not_o but_o what_o they_o be_v that_o enjoy_v their_o estate_n in_o capite_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ad_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la domini_fw-la papae_fw-la and_o enjoin_v the_o great_a silence_n and_o outward_a reverence_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o withal_o be_v content_a to_o admit_v the_o toleration_n of_o jew_n and_o turk_n too_o in_o their_o dominion_n rather_o than_o of_o christian_n yourself_o when_o you_o write_v this_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a nay_o some_o of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o as_o namely_o alexander_n the_o vi_o and_o paulus_n the_o iii_o if_o we_o may_v credit_n thuanus_n have_v secret_a commerce_n with_o the_o great_a turk_n against_o the_o christian_a prince_n and_o the_o former_a of_o they_o if_o jovius_fw-la and_o guicciardin_n mistake_v not_o take_v under_o hand_n of_o the_o turk_n baiazet_n two_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n to_o kill_v his_o brother_n gemen_n and_o alexander_n the_o iii_o write_v to_o the_o sultan_n that_o if_o he_o will_v live_v quiet_o he_o shall_v by_o some_o sleight_n murder_v the_o emperor_n fredrick_n barbarossa_n and_o to_o that_o end_n send_v he_o the_o emperor_n picture_n b._n c._n 6._o it_o be_v most_o true_a which_o i_o glad_o write_v and_o so_o give_v out_o with_o all_o the_o honour_n i_o can_v of_o your_o majesty_n to_o speak_v that_o i_o think_v there_o be_v never_o any_o catholic_a king_n in_o england_n that_o do_v in_o his_o time_n more_o embrace_v and_o favour_v the_o true_a body_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o your_o majesty_n do_v the_o shadow_n shadow_n thereof_o that_o be_v yet_o leave_v and_o my_o firm_a hope_n be_v that_o this_o your_o desire_n to_o honour_v our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v move_v he_o to_o honour_v your_o majesty_n so_o much_o as_o not_o to_o suffer_v you_o to_o die_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o his_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o let_v you_o understand_v that_o all_o honour_n that_o be_v intend_v to_o he_o by_o 3._o schism_n and_o heresy_n do_v redound_v to_o his_o great_a dishonour_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o realla_fw-la and_o of_o his_o mystical_a body_n g._n h._n 6._o you_o honour_v his_o majesty_n much_o indeed_o in_o give_v out_o that_o he_o embrace_v a_o shadow_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o substance_n as_o ixion_n do_v a_o cloud_n in_o stead_n of_o juno_n and_o jacob_n blear-eyed_a lea_n in_o stead_n of_o rachel_n but_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v safe_o say_v that_o with_o esop_n dog_n in_o snatch_v at_o the_o shadow_n she_o have_v lose_v the_o substance_n of_o religion_n she_o have_v so_o cover_v over_o all_o the_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n with_o the_o leaf_n of_o ceremony_n that_o hardly_o be_v the_o fruit_n itself_o to_o be_v see_v she_o have_v so_o bepaint_v the_o face_n of_o god_n worship_n that_o not_o easy_o be_v the_o native_a complexion_n thereof_o to_o be_v ●ound_v the_o poet_n speak_v it_o of_o the_o woman_n of_o his_o time_n pars_fw-la minima_fw-la est_fw-la ipsa_fw-la puellasui_fw-la but_o we_o may_v more_o true_o affirm_v it_o of_o the_o romish_a religion_n her_o ornament_n and_o apparel_n be_v such_o that_o a_o man_n may_v seek_v rome_n in_o rome_n and_o her_o religion_n in_o her_o religion_n and_o not_o find_v either_o i_o will_v give_v but_o one_o instance_n for_o all_o bellarmine_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n make_v no_o less_o than_o twelve_o ceremony_n to_o march_v before_o it_o five_o to_o assist_v and_o five_o to_o hold_v up_o the_o train_n of_o which_o some_o be_v profane_a the_o great_a part_n ridiculous_a and_o few_o or_o none_o wherein_o we_o differ_v so_o much_o as_o know_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n now_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v scour_v off_o the_o dross_n and_o pare_v away_o the_o superstition_n and_o novelty_n retain_v the_o substance_n together_o with_o the_o most_o comely_a and_o ancient_a ceremony_n aswell_o in_o this_o sacrament_n as_o in_o other_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o his_o majesty_n follow_v she_o therein_o shall_v he_o therefore_o be_v say_v to_o embrace_v the_o shadow_n and_o not_o the_o body_n whereas_o in_o truth_n if_o ever_o king_n of_o england_n embrace_v the_o body_n of_o religion_n without_o respect_n to_o the_o shadow_n of_o vain_a and_o needless_a ceremony_n it_o be_v his_o majesty_n which_o while_o he_o do_v there_o be_v little_a fear_n by_o god_n grace_n of_o his_o die_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n true_a catholic_a church_n who_o head_n be_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o christ_n himself_o understand_v in_o the_o 10._o of_o s._n johns_n gospel_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheepfold_a and_o one_o shepherd_n b._n c._n 7._o for_o his_o real_a body_n be_v not_o as_o the_o ubiquitary_n will_v have_v it_o every_o where_o aswell_o without_o the_o church_n as_o within_o but_o only_o where_o himself_o will_v have_v it_o and_o have_v ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o that_o be_v among_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o who_o he_o deliver_v his_o sacrament_n and_o promise_v to_o continue_v with_o they_o until_o the_o world_n end_n so_o that_o though_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o that_o schism_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n for_o so_o he_o be_v present_a in_o hell_n hell_n also_o yet_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o humanity_n by_o participation_n of_o which_o grace_n only_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o salvation_n he_o be_v not_o present_a there_o at_o all_o except_o it_o be_v 26._o in_o corner_n and_o prison_n and_o place_n of_o persecution_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o honour_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v do_v to_o christ_n in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n be_v not_o do_v to_o he_o but_o to_o his_o utter_a enemy_n g._n h._n 7._o by_o the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n i_o suppose_v you_o understand_v the_o natural_a his_o mystical_a body_n be_v also_o real_a but_o not_o natural_a and_o i_o see_v not_o but_o this_o natural_a body_n may_v as_o well_o be_v every_o where_o wherein_o you_o tax_v the_o ubiquitaries_n as_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n and_o upon_o earth_n in_o ten_o thousand_o place_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n maintain_v but_o it_o seem_v by_o confine_v of_o he_o to_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n your_o purpose_n be_v to_o exclude_v he_o from_o
and_o age_n and_o wrought_v by_o the_o frown_n and_o threat_n of_o cardinal_n poole_n than_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o pope_n legate_n and_o in_o england_n the_o principal_a proctor_n and_o champion_n for_o the_o advance_v of_o his_o authority_n be_v once_o bring_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o she_o be_v a_o roman_a catholic_a but_o herein_o she_o do_v no_o more_o than_o st._n peter_n do_v who_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_v himself_o in_o deny_v his_o master_n no_o more_o than_o the_o prince_n of_o condie_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o his_o sister_n who_o at_o the_o massacre_n of_o paris_n for_o fear_n renounce_v their_o religion_n and_o be_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o bourbon_n reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o after_o ward_n be_v at_o liberty_n they_o reimbrace_v their_o former_a profession_n nay_o no_o more_o than_o queen_n mary_n herself_o who_o be_v terrify_v with_o her_o father_n displeasure_n write_v he_o a_o letter_n with_o her_o own_o hand_n yet_o to_o be_v see_v in_o which_o for_o ever_o she_o renounce_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n in_o england_n and_o acknowledge_v her_o father_n under_o christ_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n confess_v his_o marriage_n with_o her_o mother_n to_o have_v be_v unlawful_a and_o incestuous_a but_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v after_o queen_n elizabeth_n come_v to_o the_o wear_n of_o the_o crown_n by_o what_o catholic_a opinion_n she_o give_v hope_n to_o her_o neighbour_n prince_n that_o she_o will_v continue_v catholic_a if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o mr._n doctor_n will_v bear_v we_o in_o hand_n how_o be_v it_o that_o the_o reform_a church_n through_o christendom_n applaud_v she_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n as_o it_o have_v be_v the_o appearance_n of_o some_o lucky_a star_n or_o the_o rise_n of_o some_o glorious_a sun_n for_o their_o comfort_n and_o relief_n and_o your_o pretend_a catholic_n hang_v down_o their_o head_n as_o if_o they_o have_v see_v some_o come●_n or_o blazing-starre_n how_o she_o be_v then_o affect_v in_o religion_n and_o so_o profess_v herself_o may_v appear_v if_o no_o where_o else_o yet_o in_o 1._o osorius_n his_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v she_o not_o long_o after_o her_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n where_o he_o high_o commend_v she_o for_o her_o wit_n 2._o for_o her_o learning_n for_o her_o clemency_n for_o her_o constancy_n for_o her_o wisdom_n for_o her_o modesty_n but_o dissuade_v she_o by_o all_o the_o argument_n he_o can_v invent_v from_o the_o opinion_n she_o have_v conceive_v and_o do_v express_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n pius_fw-la quartus_fw-la do_v the_o like_a in_o his_o letter_n which_o he_o send_v she_o about_o the_o same_o time_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o vincentius_n parpalia_n abbot_n of_o saint_n saviour_n 1._o who_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o letter_n date_v the_o 5_o of_o may_n 1560_o have_v private_a instruction_n to_o impart_v to_o the_o queen_n among_o which_o the_o chief_a be_v think_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v report_v by_o the_o most_o diligent_a see_v searcher_n of_o truth_n that_o if_o she_o will_v reconcile_v herself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o supremacy_n of_o that_o see_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o part_n will_v author_n bind_v himself_o to_o declare_v the_o sentence_n pronounce_v against_o her_o mother_n marriage_n to_o be_v unjust_a to_o confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n the_o english_a liturgy_n and_o to_o permit_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n here_o in_o england_n under_o both_o kind_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o at_o that_o time_n she_o then_o maintain_v the_o same_o opinion_n which_o during_o her_o life_n she_o alter_v not_o and_o here_o it_o may_v be_v worth_a the_o remember_n that_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o january_n about_o two_o month_n after_o her_o sister_n death_n as_o she_o pass_v in_o her_o triumphal_a chariot_n through_o the_o street_n of_o london_n when_o the_o bible_n be_v present_v unto_o she_o at_o the_o little_a conduit_n in_o cheap_a she_o receive_v the_o same_o with_o both_o her_o hand_n and_o kiss_v it_o lay_v it_o to_o her_o breast_n say_v that_o the_o same_o have_v ever_o be_v her_o chief_a delight_n and_o shall_v be_v the_o rule_n by_o which_o she_o mean_v to_o frame_v her_o government_n before_o this_o a_o proclamation_n come_v forth_o that_o the_o litany_n the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n the_o decalogue_n the_o creed_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n shall_v be_v read_v in_o all_o church_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n and_o though_o it_o be_v the_o 14_o of_o may_n after_o be_v whitsunday_n before_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o uniformity_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n public_o receive_v and_o july_n follow_v before_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v propose_v and_o august_n before_o the_o image_n be_v by_o authority_n move_v out_o of_o the_o church_n break_a and_o burn_v so_o moderate_o do_v she_o proceed_v in_o this_o business_n of_o reformation_n by_o step_n and_o degree_n yet_o be_v it_o plai●e_v aswell_o by_o the_o choice_n of_o those_o bacon_n eight_o who_o she_o add_v to_o her_o sister_n counsel_n be_v all_o in_o profession_n protestant_n which_o pius_n 5_o tus_fw-la in_o his_o bull_n make_v a_o part_n of_o his_o grievous_a complaint_n and_o those_o who_o she_o either_o saint-iohns_n restore_v to_o their_o former_a dignity_n or_o advance_v to_o new_a be_v likewise_o as_o averse_v from_o the_o roman_a religion_n as_o also_o by_o the_o refusal_n of_o nicholas_n heath_n than_o archbishop_n of_o york_n the_o see_v of_o canterbury_n by_o the_o death_n of_o cardinal_n poole_n who_o decease_v the_o same_o day_n that_o queen_n mary_n do_v be_v then_o void_a and_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chief_a peterborough_n bishop_n to_o anoint_v and_o consecrate_v she_o at_o her_o inauguration_n it_o be_v therefore_o perform_v by_o owen_n oglethorpe_n bishop_n of_o carlisle_n by_o these_o proceed_n i_o say_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o at_o her_o first_o entrance_n to_o the_o crown_n she_o sufficient_o declare_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o same_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o afterward_o they_o find_v she_o whereunto_o if_o full_a satisfaction_n be_v not_o yet_o give_v in_o this_o point_n for_o far_a proof_n may_v be_v add_v that_o when_o philip_n of_o spain_n woo_v she_o for_o marriage_n the_o funeral_n of_o her_o sister_n be_v not_o yet_o solemnize_v the_o french_a king_n by_o his_o agent_n the_o bishop_n of_o engolesme_n labour_v if_o it_o have_v go_v forward_o to_o stop_v their_o dispensation_n at_o rome_n under_o colour_n that_o queen_n elizabeth_n favour_v the_o protestant_n religion_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o feria_n the_o spaniard_n agent_n here_o in_o england_n bear_v our_o pretend_a catholik_o in_o hand_n that_o except_o that_o match_n go_v forward_o it_o can_v not_o go_v well_o with_o they_o so_o far_o be_v she_o at_o her_o first_o entrance_n from_o give_v hope_n to_o her_o neighbour_n as_o mr._n doctor_n will_v persuade_v the_o world_n of_o continue_v or_o turn_v catholic_a by_o show_n of_o catholic_a opinion_n unless_o her_o retain_v the_o ancient_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n and_o the_o godly_a ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v account_v catholic_a opinion_n as_o in_o truth_n if_o we_o take_v the_o word_n catholic_a aright_o they_o may_v but_o no_o marvel_n he_o shall_v thus_o bold_o and_o false_o charge_v the_o dead_a since_o he_o spare_v not_o in_o the_o same_o kind_a his_o majesty_n now_o reign_v and_o by_o god_n grace_n long_o to_o reign_v among_o we_o to_o the_o confutation_n of_o such_o slander_n and_o confusion_n of_o such_o slanderer_n he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o her_o life_n long_o she_o carry_v herself_o so_o betwixt_o catholic_n and_o caluinist_n as_o she_o keep_v they_o both_o still_o in_o hope_n but_o herein_o he_o main_o cross_v himself_o aswell_o in_o that_o which_o he_o have_v deliver_v in_o the_o section_n next_o save_v one_o go_v before_o that_o if_o there_o be_v now_o the_o same_o reason_n of_o state_n as_o there_o be_v all_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n there_o be_v as_o little_a hope_n that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v hearken_v unto_o reconciliation_n as_o then_o there_o be_v that_o q._n elizabeth_n will_v as_o also_o in_o that_o which_o afterward_o he_o add_v in_o this_o section_n that_o be_v provoke_v by_o the_o excommunication_n of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la she_o do_v suffer_v such_o law_n to_o be_v make_v by_o her_o parliament_n as_o may_v cry_v quittance_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o next_o section_n he_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a in_o reason_n of_o state_n to_o continue_v the_o doctrine_n of_o division_n as_o long_o as_o the_o
fire_n her_o navy_n and_o with_o three_o thousand_o spaniards●_n subdue_v ireland_n to_o the_o spanish_a dominion_n these_o and_o many_o other_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o provoke_v she_o we_o find_v record_v by_o hieronimus_fw-la catena_n in_o the_o life_n of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la who_o be_v secretary_n to_o cardinal_n alexandrin_n that_o pope_n nephew_n so_o that_o though_o he_o have_v in_o that_o discourse_n discover_v many_o thing_n to_o the_o world_n of_o pius_n his_o proceed_n against_o that_o queen_n before_o unknowen_a to_o our_o english_a yet_o may_v we_o well_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o place_n afford_v he_o credit_n as_o also_o in_o regard_n his_o book_n be_v print_v and_o publish_v in_o rome_n itself_o with_o the_o privilege_n and_o approbation_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n next_o successor_n to_o pius_n save_v one_o and_o have_v she_o not_o good_a reason_n then_o to_o suffer_v such_o law_n to_o be_v make_v by_o her_o parliament_n as_o may_v cry_v quittance_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o less_o innocent_a blood_n nay_o less_o blood_n be_v shed_v in_o she_o 44._o year_n in_o maintenance_n of_o christ_n and_o her_o own_o authority_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n then_o in_o her_o sister_n four_o year_n in_o maintenance_n of_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n against_o her_o own_o and_o her_o successor_n lawful_a authority_n insomuch_o as_o a_o italian_a and_o he_o no_o protestant_a as_o i_o guess_v give_v this_o testimony_n of_o she_o 568._o tanta_fw-la extitit_fw-la eius_fw-la animi_fw-la moderatio_fw-la atque_fw-la innata_fw-la clementia_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la immerito_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o great_a and_o so_o apparent_a be_v the_o moderation_n of_o her_o mind_n and_o inbred_a clemency_n that_o not_o undeserued_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o she_o which_o the_o ancient_a history_n have_v leave_v to_o posterity_n of_o alexander_n severus_n bear_v of_o his_o mother_n mammaea_n nempe_fw-la anaematon_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la citra_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la namely_o that_o she_o have_v govern_v her_o kingdom_n without_o bloodshed_n cum_fw-la suapte_v natura_fw-la semper_fw-la à_fw-la caedibus_fw-la &_o crudelitate_fw-la abhorreat_fw-la for_o even_o her_o nature_n do_v abhor_v the_o thought_n of_o slaughter_n or_o cruelty_n &_o so_o he_o go_v on_o in_o a_o large_a discourse_n of_o her_o praise_n and_o when_o he_o thus_o write_v she_o have_v reign_v twenty_o year_n it_o be_v a_o marvel_n as_o the_o late_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o parson_n have_v well_o observe_v their_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la have_v not_o scour_v he_o ere_o this_o and_o for_o this_o nay_o their_o own_o priest_n shall_v speak_v for_o queen_n elizabeth_n law_n who_o 277._o say_v that_o consider_v jesuitical_a practice_n shadow_v under_o the_o cloak_n of_o religion_n all_o the_o law_n enact_v against_o catholic_n be_v make_v with_o great_a moderation_n and_o clemency_n as_o come_v from_o a_o prince_n most_o mild_a and_o merciful_a nor_o have_v they_o cause_n to_o urge_v repeal_n of_o any_o statute_n make_v so_o long_o as_o jesuit_n take_v such_o course_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o parson_n himself_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o triple_a conversion_n commend_v queen_n elizabeth_n for_o her_o moderate_a government_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o last_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n and_o yet_o by_o the_o way_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o leaf_n have_v so_o commend_v she_o in_o one_o page_n marry_o than_o she_o be_v alive_a in_o the_o very_a next_o page_n for_o then_o he_o hear_v she_o be_v dead_a in_o a_o preface_n to_o his_o majesty_n he_o compare_v she_o to_o dioclesian_n for_o cruelty_n whereas_o her_o sobriety_n and_o clemency_n be_v such_o that_o her_o brother_n king_n edward_n be_v wont_n common_o to_o call_v she_o his_o sweet_a sister_n temperance_n neither_o do_v she_o ever_o hear_v of_o any_o capital_a punishment_n though_o never_o so_o deserve_v upon_o offender_n even_o of_o such_o as_o have_v seek_v she_o own_o death_n but_o it_o breed_v a_o kind_n of_o horror_n and_o sadness_n in_o she_o whereby_o have_v not_o her_o counsellor_n earnest_o inculcate_v the_o necessity_n of_o some_o exemplary_a justice_n many_o dangerous_a attempter_n have_v escape_v due_a punishment_n which_o move_v she_o to_o say_v be_v once_o question_v with_o a_o great_a c.c.c._n divine_a in_o oxford_n about_o book_n meet_v for_o prince_n to_o study_v on_o that_o her_o read_n of_o senecade_n clementia_n have_v do_v she_o much_o good_a but_o some_o will_v persuade_v she_o it_o have_v do_v her_o state_n as_o much_o harm_n howsoever_o i_o will_v shut_v up_o this_o point_n with_o s._n 48._o augustine_n when_o he_o be_v entreat_v to_o mediate_v for_o a_o mitigation_n of_o some_o strait_a law_n if_o prince_n serve_v christ_n in_o make_v law_n for_o christ_n they_o do_v what_o they_o ought_v i_o will_v not_o gain_v say_v they_o and_o yourself_o grant_v that_o this_o course_n seem_v in_o poli●ie_n necessary_a for_o she_o who_o be_v the_o daughter_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o by_o anne_n bulloyne_n bear_v with_o the_o contempt_n of_o rome_n the_o disgrace_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o prejudice_n of_o scotland_n and_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o it_o both_o seem_v and_o be_v a_o necessary_a course_n for_o she_o not_o only_o in_o policy_n but_o in_o piety_n who_o be_v the_o daughter_n of_o he_o who_o upon_o just_a reason_n unhorse_v the_o pope_n of_o his_o pretend_a authority_n by_o she_o who_o be_v not_o only_o a_o zealous_a professor_n but_o a_o patroness_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o profess_v and_o for_o her_o birth_n with_o the_o contempt_n of_o rome_n and_o disgrace_n of_o spain_n it_o seem_v by_o her_o course_n she_o be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o have_v it_o so_o interpret_v but_o for_o the_o prejudice_n of_o scotland_n she_o be_v upon_o all_o occasion_n so_o far_o as_o she_o conceive_v it_o stand_v with_o her_o safety_n and_o honour_n most_o willing_a to_o express_v the_o contrary_n and_o sure_o by_o her_o live_n and_o die_v in_o a_o single_a state_n without_o marriage_n she_o rather_o prepare_v a_o way_n to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o that_o title_n which_o we_o now_o see_v to_o our_o great_a comfort_n as_o she_o will_v also_o no_o doubt_n to_o she_o si_fw-la quis_fw-la modo_fw-la sensus_fw-la in_o vmbris_fw-la if_o there_o be_v any_o feeling_n or_o knowledge_n in_o the_o dead_a of_o these_o temporal_a and_o transitory_a affair_n see_v it_o be_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v as_o true_a in_o that_o succession_n as_o it_o be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n strange_a mira_n cano_fw-la sol_fw-la occubuit_fw-la nox_fw-la nulla_fw-la secuta_fw-la est_fw-la b._n c._n 33._o but_o now_o that_o your_o majesty_n be_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o side_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o your_o undoubted_a title_n settle_v with_o long_a succession_n the_o case_n be_v very_o much_o alter_v for_o your_o majesty_n have_v no_o need_n of_o dispensation_n nor_o will_v to_o pull_v down_o church_n nor_o no_o dependence_n at_o all_o on_o henry_n the_o viii_o and_o if_o this_o schism_n can_v have_v prevent_v your_o title_n with_o the_o divorce_n of_o one_o wife_n and_o the_o marry_n of_o five_o more_o neither_o your_o mother_n nor_o yourself_o shall_v ever_o have_v make_v queen_n elizabeth_n afraid_a with_o your_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o reason_n of_o state_n to_o continue_v the_o elizabeth_n doctrine_n of_o division_n as_o long_o as_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o doctrine_n do_v continue_v yet_o now_o the_o fruit_n of_o schism_n be_v all_o spend_v and_o that_o parenthesis_n of_o state_n be_v at_o a_o end_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n but_o that_o the_o old_a sentence_n may_v return_v again_o and_o be_v continue_v in_o that_o sense_n as_o if_o the_o parenthesis_n have_v be_v clean_o leave_v out_o and_o that_o god_n have_v of_o purpose_n cross_v the_o fleshly_a pretence_n of_o schism_n and_o raise_v your_o majesty_n to_o restore_v it_o as_o your_o most_o wise_a and_o catholic_a progenitor_n king_n henry_n the_o vii_o do_v leave_v it_o g._n h._n 33._o if_o his_o majesty_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o side_n be_v come_v to_o the_o crown_n why_o do_v clement_n the_o viii_o the_o year_n before_o his_o entrance_n and_o that_o as_o his_o majesty_n witness_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o paulus_n quintus_n his_o first_o breve_fw-la contrary_a to_o his_o manifold_a vow_n and_o protestation_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o same_o breath_n deliver_v to_o diverse_a of_o his_o majesty_n agent_n abroad_o send_v to_o confederates_n henry_n garnet_n jesuite_n their_o archpriest_n in_o england_n two_o bull_n to_o the_o contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o other_o
to_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n whereof_o a_o chief_a one_o be_v his_o majesty_n undertake_v the_o cause_n in_o writing_n wherein_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o bless_v god_n that_o have_v set_v such_o a_o king_n over_o we_o who_o he_o have_v endow_v with_o such_o singular_a gift_n as_o to_o give_v occasion_n to_o such_o a_o objection_n he_o be_v no_o fool_n that_o pronounce_v that_o commonwealth_n happy_a where_o learned_a man_n have_v the_o government_n or_o the_o governor_n be_v learn_v and_o another_o who_o hold_v those_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n who_o come_v from_o the_o east_n be_v therefore_o hold_v king_n because_o they_o be_v learn_v which_o i_o speak_v not_o to_o derogate_v from_o other_o king_n but_o to_o thank_v god_n for_o our_o own_o who_o drop_n that_o fall_v both_o from_o his_o tongue_n and_o pen_n be_v as_o the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v in_o another_o case_n like_o rain_n fall_v upon_o the_o mow_v grass_n or_o as_o shower_n that_o water_n the_o earth_n we_o have_v read_v in_o our_o own_o chronicle_n of_o one_o bladud_n a_o british_a king_n who_o study_v at_o athens_n of_o alured_n a_o saxon_a king_n who_o translate_v the_o psalter_n into_o his_o own_o language_n of_o henry_n a_o norman_a king_n who_o for_o his_o great_a scholarship_n be_v surname_v the_o beauclarke_n but_o for_o a_o king_n only_a david_n and_o solomon_n except_v that_o have_v write_v so_o much_o and_o so_o well_o as_o his_o majesty_n &_o expose_v it_o to_o public_a censure_n have_v leave_v it_o as_o a_o everlasting_a monument_n of_o his_o name_n to_o posterity_n for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o must_v confess_v in_o my_o small_a read_n i_o have_v not_o meet_v with_o any_o either_o in_o our_o own_o or_o foreign_a history_n some_o king_n have_v do_v some_o what_o in_o this_o kind_n but_o he_o excel_v they_o all_o so_o that_o for_o a_o christian_a king_n to_o write_v and_o to_o publish_v his_o write_n to_o the_o world_n even_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o without_o example_n the_o book_n of_o charlemagne_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o frankfurt_n which_o himself_o have_v thither_o call_v and_o against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n touch_v the_o controversy_n of_o adore_a image_n be_v yet_o extant_a to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o palatine_a library_n &_o so_o be_v it_o acknowledge_v by_o augustinus_n steuchus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o constantine_n donation_n where_o he_o press_v some_o thing_n in_o that_o book_n for_o the_o pope_n advantage_n howbeit_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o image_n and_o 15_o chapter_n labourto_o prove_v the_o contrary_a grant_v that_o it_o be_v send_v by_o that_o emperor_n to_o pope_n adrian_n but_o not_o as_o his_o own_o his_o majesty_n book_n aswell_o the_o former_a in_o defence_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n as_o the_o late_a by_o way_n of_o premonition_n to_o the_o christian_a state_n be_v no_o doubt_n as_o great_a corrosive_n and_o eyesore_n to_o you_o as_o to_o we_o they_o be_v cordial_a and_o comfortable_a and_o can_v be_v but_o to_o he_o as_o dishonourable_a if_o he_o shall_v recall_v they_o as_o now_o they_o be_v honourable_a if_o he_o continue_v constant_a to_o himself_o and_o they_o now_o that_o they_o shall_v proceed_v rather_o from_o the_o instigation_n of_o other_o than_o his_o own_o disposition_n be_v a_o surmise_n of_o your_o own_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o more_o foolish_a as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v both_o write_v and_o speak_v and_o do_v since_o he_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n conformable_o thereunto_o or_o dishonest_a in_o call_v his_o majesty_n singular_a wisdom_n into_o question_n in_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v so_o far_o abuse_v as_o unwitting_o to_o be_v send_v on_o other_o man_n errand_n and_o to_o serve_v other_o man_n turn_n howsoever_o there_o be_v nothing_o you_o say_v in_o that_o book_n by_o which_o you_o can_v but_o understand_v both_o the_o premonition_n and_o the_o apology_n both_o bind_v together_o in_o one_o volume_n and_o title_v together_o in_o one_o front_n why_o his_o majesty_n may_v not_o when_o he_o please_v admit_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n wherein_o first_o you_o dash_v though_o peradventure_o unaware_o against_o your_o great_a cardinal_n who_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o blackwell_n profess_v that_o in_o whatsoever_o word_n the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n in_o defence_n of_o which_o his_o majesty_n write_v his_o apology_n be_v conceive_v it_o tend_v to_o none_o other_o end_n but_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n may_v be_v transfer_v from_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o the_o successor_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o viii_o this_o indeed_o he_o affirm_v false_o but_o both_o in_o his_o tortus_fw-la against_o his_o majesty_n apology_n and_o in_o his_o apology_n against_o his_o majesty_n premonition_n he_o affirm_v true_o that_o the_o usurp_a supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o they_o both_o impugn_a and_o i_o can_v but_o marvel_v at_o such_o shameless_a impudency_n as_o dare_v thus_o to_o write_v to_o his_o majesty_n touch_v his_o own_o write_n who_o very_a word_n towards_o the_o late_a end_n of_o his_o apology_n be_v these_o discourse_v before_o of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o viii_o in_o church-matter_n for_o which_o bishop_n fisher_n and_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n be_v pretend_v to_o have_v suffer_v i_o be_o sure_a say_v he_o that_o the_o supremacy_n of_o king_n may_v and_o will_v ever_o be_v better_o maintain_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o must_v ever_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n to_o discern_v all_o weighty_a head_n of_o doctrine_n by_o to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a office_n of_o christian_a king_n in_o their_o own_o dominion_n than_o he_o will_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v his_o annihilate_v king_n and_o their_o authority_n together_o with_o his_o base_a and_o unreverent_a speech_n of_o they_o wherewith_o both_o his_o former_a great_a volume_n and_o his_o late_a book_n against_o venice_n be_v fill_v where_o he_o go_v on_o and_o prove_v this_o supremacy_n aswell_o by_o the_o old_a as_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o practice_n both_o of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o christian_a emperor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n both_o explain_v and_o justify_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n as_o it_o be_v by_o he_o impose_v and_o take_v by_o we_o and_o in_o his_o premonition_n write_v afterward_o though_o set_v before_o in_o the_o book_n he_o be_v so_o clear_a in_o this_o point_n that_o mr._n dr._n can_v but_o stand_v convince_v either_o of_o gross_a negligence_n in_o not_o read_v or_o unpardonable_a forgetfulness_n in_o not_o remember_v what_o he_o have_v read_v his_o majesty_n word_n be_v these_o but_o as_o i_o well_o allow_v of_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n for_o distinction_n of_o order_n for_o so_o i_o understand_v it_o so_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o earthly_a monarch_n thereof_o who_o word_n must_v be_v a_o law_n and_o who_o can_v err_v in_o his_o sentence_n by_o a_o infabilitie_n of_o spirit_n because_o earthly_a kingdom_n must_v have_v earthly_a monarchy_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o visible_a monarch_n too_o for_o the_o world_n have_v not_o one_o earthly_a temporal_a monarch_n christ_n be_v his_o church_n monarch_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o deputy_n 25._o reges_fw-la gentium_fw-la dominantur_fw-la eorum_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la sic_fw-la christ_n do_v not_o promise_v before_o his_o ascension_n to_o leave_v peter_n with_o they_o to_o direct_v and_o instruct_v they_o in_o all_o thing_n 26._o but_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o they_o to_o that_o end_n and_o for_o these_o two_o before_o cite_a place_n whereby_o bellarmine_n make_v the_o pope_n to_o triumph_v over_o king_n i_o mean_v 17._o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la and_o 18._o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la clave_n the_o cardinal_n know_v well_o enough_o the_o same_o wo●●s_n of_o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la be_v in_o another_o place_n speak_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o he_o likewise_o know_v what_o reason_n the_o ancient_n do_v give_v why_o christ_n bid_v peter_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la and_o also_o what_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n there_o be_v both_o of_o ancient_n and_o even_o of_o late_a popish_a writer_n yea_o diverse_a cardinal_n that_o do_v all_o agree_v that_o both_o these_o speech_n use_v to_o peter_n be_v mean_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n represent_v in_o his_o person_n otherwise_o how_o can_v paul_n direct_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o incestuous_a person_n cum_fw-la spiritu_fw-la svo_fw-la 4._o whereas_o he_o shall_v then_o have_v say_v cum_fw-la spiritu_fw-la petri_n and_o how_o can_v all_o the_o
king_n henry_n the_o viii_o and_o edward_n the_o vi_o who_o by_o their_o letter_n patent_n have_v warrant_v the_o same_o of_o which_o land_n and_o possession_n if_o the_o owner_n shall_v now_o be_v dispossess_v the_o king_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o repay_v unto_o they_o all_o their_o money_n which_o will_v arise_v to_o such_o a_o huge_a mass_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a matter_n for_o the_o crown_n to_o restore_v it_o 3_o the_o noble_n and_o gentry_n of_o this_o realm_n most_o of_o who_o have_v sell_v and_o alien_v their_o ancient_a inheritance_n to_o buy_v these_o new_a can_v live_v according_a to_o their_o degree_n if_o these_o possession_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o 4_o the_o purchaser_n or_o owner_n of_o such_o land_n and_o possession_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o come_v to_o they_o by_o just_a title_n according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o king_n of_o this_o kingdom_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v still_o hold_v a_o good_a and_o iustifyable_a course_n in_o obtain_v they_o 5_o the_o enjoy_n of_o such_o land_n and_o possession_n be_v so_o common_a unto_o every_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n city_n college_n and_o incorporation_n that_o if_o the_o same_o be_v take_v from_o they_o there_o will_v necessary_o follow_v thereupon_o throughout_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n a_o sudden_a change_n and_o confusion_n of_o all_o order_n and_o degree_n 6_o see_v that_o the_o good_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n even_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o cannon_n may_v be_v alien_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o captive_n and_o that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v do_v by_o that_o church_n only_o to_o who_o such_o possession_n do_v belong_v it_o be_v fit_a and_o reasonable_a that_o such_o dispensation_n shall_v be_v grant_v for_o continue_v of_o possession_n already_o get_v for_o so_o great_a a_o good_a of_o public_a concord_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o preservation_n of_o this_o state_n as_o well_o in_o body_n as_o in_o soul_n those_o possession_n indeed_o in_o many_o place_n i_o speak_v special_o of_o ten_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o popish_a dispensation_n be_v first_o carry_v from_o the_o church_n be_v as_o the_o fl●sh_n which_o the_o eagle_n steal_v from_o the_o altar_n carry_v a_o coal_n of_o fire_n with_o it_o to_o the_o burn_a down_o and_o quite_o consume_v of_o the_o nest_n of_o many_o of_o they_o that_o hold_v they_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n mr._n doctor_n may_v well_o say_v that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o who_o now_o enjoy_v they_o have_v pay_v well_o for_o they_o in_o asmuch_o as_o the_o first_o owner_n be_v enforce_v or_o their_o posterity_n within_o a_o generation_n or_o two_o to_o sell_v that_o which_o other_o purchase_v now_o this_o curse_n of_o god_n i_o can_v impute_v to_o none_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o the_o alienation_n of_o ten_o from_o their_o proper_a use_n to_o which_o they_o be_v and_o still_o shall_v be_v ordain_v or_o at_o leastwise_o the_o bare_a and_o scant_a allowance_n which_o be_v make_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o fat_a impropriation_n so_o that_o common_o no_o parish_n be_v worse_o provide_v for_o than_o those_o that_o pay_v most_o the_o redress_n whereof_o if_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o put_v into_o his_o majesty_n heart_n and_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o estate_n in_o parliament_n it_o will_v be_v a_o work_n no_o doubt_n honourable_a in_o itself_o acceptable_a to_o christ_n and_o beneficial_a to_o his_o church_n for_o which_o he_o will_v the_o rather_o bless_v their_o other_o proceed_n i_o speak_v not_o for_o the_o restore_n of_o impropriation_n though_o that_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v wish_v then_o hope_v their_o value_n be_v little_a or_o nothing_o inferior_a to_o the_o benefice_n but_o the_o make_n of_o a_o competent_a allowance_n out_o of_o they_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o a_o preach_a minister_n and_o i_o be_o sorry_a to_o hear_v that_o some_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o backward_o in_o the_o former_a who_o most_o urge_v the_o late_a the_o rather_o for_o that_o i_o will_v not_o have_v it_o think_v our_o religion_n can_v stand_v but_o by_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o church_n live_n though_o the_o pope_n as_o it_o seem_v by_o mr._n doctor_n care_v not_o who_o lose_v so_o that_o himself_o may_v win_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n we_o preach_v not_o against_o but_o as_o for_o merit_n of_o work_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n they_o be_v preach_v against_o and_o that_o in_o england_n long_o before_o the_o land_n be_v take_v from_o the_o abbey_n and_o though_o they_o be_v still_o preach_v against_o yet_o with_o we_o be_v the_o saint_n reverence_v with_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o they_o by_o our_o observation_n of_o the_o day_n consecrate_v to_o the_o memorial_n of_o their_o glorious_a and_o precious_a death_n and_o some_o church_n be_v build_v among_o we_o as_o occasion_n serve_v and_o necessity_n require_v but_o more_o hospital_n school_n almshouse_n college_n library_n and_o the_o like_a charitable_a work_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n to_o this_o present_a time_n then_o in_o the_o space_n of_o any_o three_o score_n year_n successive_o take_v since_o the_o conquest_n which_o i_o speak_v not_o to_o boast_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o religion_n but_o to_o give_v god_n the_o honour_n and_o as_o for_o the_o hugonote_n of_o france_n as_o you_o be_v please_v to_o term_v they_o if_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o pull_v down_o church_n we_o neither_o encourage_v they_o to_o it_o nor_o defend_v they_o in_o it_o as_o neither_o do_v we_o the_o papist_n in_o their_o barbarous_a massacre_n but_o only_o say_v of_o they_o as_o the_o parent_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n they_o be_v of_o sufficient_a age_n let_v they_o answer_v for_o themselves_o last_o because_o you_o address_v your_o discourse_n in_o particular_a to_o the_o noble_n in_o this_o section_n i_o crave_v leave_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o piece_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o their_o predecessor_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n during_o the_o reigle_n of_o henry_n the_o iii_o i_o will_v recite_v it_o in_o the_o word_n of_o matthew_n paris_n translate_v the_o great_a one_o say_v he_o by_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n complain_v of_o the_o scandal_n breed_v out_o of_o the_o rapine_n and_o avarice_n of_o rome_n and_o spread_v not_o only_o in_o england_n but_o through_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o themselves_o will_v not_o endure_v that_o their_o country_n from_o thencefoorth_o shall_v be_v so_o rude_o handle_v no_o though_o the_o king_n himself_o shall_v wink_v at_o it_o and_o unless_o say_v they_o these_o matter_n be_v speedy_o redress_v by_o you_o let_v your_o holiness_n know_v for_o certain_a that_o it_o may_v not_o unjust_o be_v fear_v that_o such_o a_o danger_n be_v likely_a thereby_o to_o ensue_v both_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o our_o lord_n the_o king_n that_o no_o remedy_n will_v easy_o be_v find_v for_o it_o my_o hope_n then_o be_v that_o our_o noble_n be_v now_o far_o enlighten_v by_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o clear_a discovery_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o write_n of_o learned_a man_n than_o their_o predecessor_n who_o live_v in_o those_o time_n of_o darkness_n will_n like_o the_o noble_a theophilus_n to_o who_o s._n luke_n dedicate_v his_o gospel_n and_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o noble_a berean_o 10._o who_o the_o more_o noble_a they_o be_v receive_v the_o word_n with_o the_o great_a readiness_n hold_v fast_o the_o profession_n which_o they_o have_v vow_v themselves_o unto_o by_o resist_v the_o usurpation_n and_o tyranny_n of_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o maintain_v the_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n of_o their_o country_n in_o the_o first_o parliament_n hold_v by_o queen_n mary_n after_o her_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n the_o nobility_n of_o england_n though_o they_o give_v way_n to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o doctrinal_a point_n as_o they_o be_v use_v and_o hold_v in_o her_o father_n king_n henry_n time_n yet_o can_v they_o hardly_o be_v induce_v either_o by_o her_o importunity_n who_o it_o most_o concern_v in_o regard_n of_o her_o birthright_n make_v good_a by_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n or_o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o cardinal_n poole_n her_o cousin_n and_o by_o her_o make_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o have_v be_v for_o many_o year_n maintain_v for_o the_o most_o part_n at_o the_o pope_n charge_n to_o yield_v that_o the_o queen_n shall_v surrender_v her_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o exercise_v his_o wont_a jurisdiction_n within_o her_o dominion_n how_o much_o more_o than_o at_o
this_o time_n shall_v they_o pluck_v up_o their_o spirit_n to_o the_o abandon_v of_o that_o unjust_a challenge_n have_v now_o a_o sovereign_n who_o in_o his_o 112._o write_n last_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n bear_v the_o date_n of_o this_o year_n consecrate_v his_o sceptre_n his_o sword_n his_o pen_n his_o endeavour_n unto_o god_n in_o a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o grace_n bestow_v on_o he_o in_o free_v he_o from_o the_o error_n of_o this_o age_n and_o his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o pope_n yoke_n which_o keep_v it_o in_o thraldom_n in_o which_o god_n be_v now_o sincere_o serve_v and_o call_v upon_o in_o a_o language_n under_o stand_v of_o all_o in_o which_o the_o people_n may_v read_v the_o scripture_n without_o any_o special_a privilege_n and_o with_o the_o same_o freedom_n as_o the_o people_n of_o ephesus_n of_o rome_n of_o corinth_n read_v the_o epistle_n write_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o which_o they_o pay_v no_o more_o tribute_n by_o the_o polle_n thereby_o to_o obtain_v the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n as_o they_o do_v scarce_o one_o hundred_o year_n yet_o past_a neither_o be_v they_o enforce_v to_o seek_v their_o pardon_n beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o mountain_n god_n himself_o present_v they_o to_o my_o subject_n say_v he_o in_o there_o own_o country_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o if_o in_o this_o regard_n it_o be_v that_o the_o cardinal_n term_v the_o church_n of_o my_o kingdom_n miserable_a for_o my_o own_o part_n 1_o esteem_v our_o misery_n above_o his_o happiness_n since_o than_o we_o have_v by_o god_n providence_n such_o a_o sovereign_n let_v that_o aspersion_n never_o be_v fasten_v upon_o our_o nobility_n which_o his_o majesty_n just_o cast_v upon_o the_o french_a that_o in_fw-la as_o much_o as_o they_o give_v way_n to_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o their_o king_n to_o be_v deposable_a by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v fit_a that_o withal_o they_o shall_v dive_a themselves_o of_o their_o title_n and_o resign_v they_o to_o the_o three_o estate_n who_o be_v the_o only_a man_n that_o can_v neither_o be_v so_o draw_v by_o promise_n nor_o affright_v by_o threat_n but_o that_o they_o ever_o hold_v they_o fast_o to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o king_n honour_n and_o the_o surety_n of_o his_o person_n b._n c._n 40._o but_o perhaps_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n do_v gain_v so_o much_o by_o the_o schism_n as_o they_o can_v abide_v to_o hear_v of_o unity_n indeed_o when_o the_o puritan_n preacher_n have_v call_v his_o flock_n about_o he_o and_o describe_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v so_o ignorant_a so_o idolatrous_a and_o so_o wicked_a as_o he_o have_v make_v himself_o believe_v she_o be_v then_o be_v he_o wont_a to_o congratulate_v his_o poor_a deceive_v audience_n that_o they_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o such_o good_a man_n as_o himself_o be_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o darkness_n and_o idolatry_n and_o wickedness_n of_o popery_n and_o there_o be_v no_o man_n dare_v say_v a_o word_n or_o once_o mutter_v to_o the_o contrary_a but_o the_o people_n have_v hear_v these_o both_o lie_v so_o long_o as_o most_o of_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v weary_a and_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o can_v but_o wonder_v how_o these_o puritan_n preacher_n shall_v become_v more_o they_o learned_a and_o more_o honest_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o live_v in_o ancient_a time_n or_o that_o live_v still_o in_o catholic_a country_n or_o then_o those_o in_o england_n mistake_v who_o these_o man_n be_v wont_n to_o condemn_v for_o papist_n nevertheless_o i_o confess_v there_o be_v many_o none_o honest_a man_n and_o woman_n among_o they_o that_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o prejudice_n or_o scripture_n pretext_n of_o scripture_n do_v follow_v these_o preacher_n more_o of_o zeal_n and_o devotion_n to_o the_o church_n as_o myself_o do_v until_o i_o know_v it_o be_v but_o counterfeit_n and_o these_o good_a people_n if_o they_o may_v be_v so_o knowledge_n happy_a as_o to_o hear_v catholic_n answer_v for_o themselves_o and_o tell_v they_o the_o truth_n will_v be_v the_o most_o devout_a catholic_n of_o all_o other_o but_o the_o sermon_n most_o of_o the_o people_n be_v never_o lead_v by_o sermon_n if_o they_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v both_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o supply_v they_o far_o better_a than_o the_o schism_n us._n but_o it_o be_v a_o opinion_n of_o wealth_n and_o liberty_n make_v they_o break_v at_o first_o and_o if_o they_o do_v due_o consider_v of_o it_o they_o be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o either_o of_o both_o but_o much_o the_o worse_o g._n h._n 40._o from_o the_o noble_n you_o descend_v to_o the_o commons_o enter_v your_o discourse_n with_o the_o like_a imaginary_a sermon_n of_o a_o puritan_n preacher_n as_o before_o you_o bring_v upon_o the_o stage_n in_o the_o 16_o section_n of_o this_o chapter_n you_o paint_v he_o forth_o describe_v the_o ignorance_n idolatry_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o sure_o if_o this_o make_v a_o puritan_n dante_n be_v and_o boccace_n and_o petrarch_n and_o mantuan_n must_v be_v puritan_n poet_n too_o and_o guicciardin_n a_o puritan_n historian_n and_o savanorola_n a_o puritan_n preacher_n though_o all_o italian_n and_o most_o of_o they_o well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v now_o come_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o people_n be_v such_o that_o they_o adore_v it_o as_o the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n content_v themselves_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v of_o their_o ordinary_a priest_n that_o myself_o meet_v some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o street_n and_o inquire_v the_o way_n in_o latin_a they_o have_v reply_v they_o understand_v not_o my_o dutch_a of_o their_o friar_n that_o they_o have_v a_o company_n term_v the_o fraternity_n of_o ignorance_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n that_o in_o the_o tridentine_a council_n scarce_o twenty_o of_o two_o hundred_o dare_v adventure_v to_o speak_v public_o but_o serve_v only_o as_o cypher_n to_o fill_v up_o the_o room_n and_o make_v up_o the_o number_n of_o voice_n nay_o of_o their_o pope_n themselves_o that_o some_o have_v pass_v their_o grant_n with_o fiatur_fw-la in_o stead_n of_o fiat_n other_o have_v excommunicate_v they_o who_o hold_v the_o antipode_n as_o zacharie_n at_o the_o instance_n of_o boniface_n boio_fw-la archbishop_n of_o mentz_n do_v vergilius_n the_o famous_a mathematician_n and_o last_o some_o have_v condemn_v they_o for_o heretic_n who_o study_v the_o more_o refine_a kind_n of_o learning_n or_o any_o way_n smell_v of_o the_o university_n as_o platina_n report_v it_o of_o paulus_n secundus_fw-la in_o who_o time_n he_o live_v and_o with_o the_o description_n of_o his_o life_n end_v his_o own_o touch_v their_o idolatry_n when_o i_o shall_v see_v doctor_n raynolds_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr idololatria_fw-la romana_fw-la sound_o and_o full_o answer_v i_o will_v in_o my_o judgement_n free_v they_o from_o that_o imputation_n before_o than_o i_o must_v take_v leave_n to_o suspend_v it_o last_o concern_v their_o wickedness_n i_o marvel_v the_o doctor_n will_v give_v occasion_n to_o rub_v afresh_o upon_o that_o sore_a which_o if_o i_o shall_v thorough_o open_v will_v prove_v so_o noisome_a and_o unsavoury_a now_o if_o this_o make_v a_o püritan_n preacher_n to_o inform_v his_o auditory_a of_o these_o corruption_n in_o that_o church_n and_o to_o thank_v god_n for_o our_o deliverance_n from_o they_o if_o not_o in_o whole_a yet_o by_o god_n grace_n in_o some_o good_a measure_n i_o confess_v myself_o to_o be_v a_o puritan_n preacher_n and_o think_v no_o honest_a mind_a minister_n in_o england_n will_v refuse_v that_o title_n tender_v under_o those_o condition_n and_o if_o the_o people_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v this_o inestimable_a blessing_n with_o hearty_a thankfulness_n to_o god_n for_o it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v he_o will_v remove_v their_o candlestick_n and_o in_o his_o judgement_n suffer_v they_o to_o relapse_n again_o into_o their_o former_a disease_n b._n c._n 41._o for_o wealth_n the_o puritan_n unthrift_n that_o look_v for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n cathedral_n hope_v to_o have_v his_o share_n in_o they_o if_o they_o will_v fallonce_v and_o therefore_o he_o can_v choose_v but_o desire_n to_o increase_v the_o schism_n that_o he_o may_v gain_v by_o it_o but_o the_o benefit_n honest_a protestant_n that_o can_v endure_v the_o state_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v for_o he_o shall_v receive_v more_o benefit_n by_o it_o every_o way_n the_o poor_a gentleman_n and_o yeoman_n that_o be_v burden_a with_o many_o child_n may_v remember_v that_o in_o catholic_a time_n the_o church_n will_v have_v receive_v and_o provide_v for_o many_o of_o their_o son_n and_o daughter_n so_o as_o
themselves_o may_v have_v live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n without_o posterity_n and_o have_v help_v to_o maintain_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o family_n which_o be_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n both_o for_o the_o exoneration_n and_o provision_n thereof_o as_o no_o religion_n humane_a policy_n can_v procure_v the_o like_a the_o farmer_n and_o husbandman_n who_o labour_v to_o discharge_v his_o payment_n &_o have_v little_a or_o nothing_o leave_v at_o theyere_n end_v to_o lay_v up_o for_o his_o child_n that_o increase_n &_o grow_v upon_o he_o may_v remember_v that_o in_o catholic_a time_n there_o be_v better_a pennyworth_n to_o be_v have_v when_o the_o clergy_n have_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o land_n in_o their_o hand_n who_o have_v no_o need_n to_o raise_v the_o rent_n themselves_o and_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o make_v other_o lord_n let_v at_o a_o reasonable_a rate_n which_o be_v also_o a_o inestimable_a benefit_n to_o the_o commons_o so_o that_o whereas_o ignorant_a man_n carry_v with_o envy_n against_o the_o clergy_n be_v wont_a to_o object_v the_o multitude_n of_o they_o and_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o provision_n they_o speak_v therein_o as_o much_o against_o themselves_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o great_a the_o number_n be_v of_o such_o man_n as_o be_v flesh_n mundo_fw-la mortui_fw-la the_o more_o be_v the_o exoneration_n of_o the_o commons_o and_o the_o more_o the_o land_n be_v of_o such_o as_o can_v have_v no_o propriety_n in_o they_o the_o better_a be_v the_o provision_n of_o the_o commons_o for_o themselves_o can_v have_v no_o more_o than_o their_o food_n and_o their_o regular_a apparel_n all_o the_o rest_n either_o remain_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o tenant_n or_o return_n in_o hospitality_n and_o relief_n to_o their_o neighbour_n or_o be_v keep_v in_o a_o live_a exchequer_n for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o country_n in_o time_n of_o necessity_n so_o that_o the_o commons_o do_v gain_v no_o wealth_n at_o all_o but_o rather_o do_v lose_v much_o by_o the_o schism_n g._n h._n 41._o you_o proceed_v and_o assure_v the_o commons_o that_o our_o separation_n from_o rome_n make_v much_o against_o their_o wealth_n and_o liberty_n for_o proof_n whereof_o you_o begin_v with_o the_o puritan_n unthrift_n who_o look_v for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n cathedral_n hope_v to_o have_v his_o share_n in_o they_o now_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o some_o such_o unthrift_n there_o may_v be_v shroud_a themselves_o under_o the_o vizard_n of_o those_o who_o you_o call_v puritan_n but_o their_o power_n be_v not_o so_o great_a god_n be_v thank_v as_o we_o need_v fear_v they_o nor_o i_o hope_v shall_v be_v while_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o posterity_n sway_v the_o sceptre_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o pull_v they_o down_o or_o give_v any_o way_n unto_o it_o that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o to_o his_o immortal_a fame_n bind_v his_o hand_n from_o withdraw_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o but_o restore_v they_o in_o scotland_n and_o both_o often_o and_o open_o profess_v no_o bishop_n no_o king_n and_o as_o for_o they_o which_o look_v for_o that_o overthrow_n let_v their_o eye_n drop_v out_o of_o their_o socket_n with_o look_v and_o the_o young_a raven_n devour_v they_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o platform_n of_o our_o church_n government_n devise_v by_o parson_n if_o the_o pope_n shall_v once_o again_o recover_v his_o foot_n among_o we_o in_o which_o one_o especial_a piece_n of_o his_o project_n be_v the_o pull_v down_o of_o the_o bishopric_n &_o church_n cathedral_n that_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o padres_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o so_o that_o the_o jesuit_n may_v most_o proper_o be_v term_v those_o puritan_n unthrift_n and_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o if_o his_o holiness_n can_v dispense_v with_o those_o who_o withhold_v the_o ten_o of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v as_o well_o dispense_v with_o the_o pull_n down_o of_o bishopricke_n and_o cathedral_n church_n now_o for_o those_o honest_a protestant_n who_o for_o matter_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v conditional_o themselves_o may_v receive_v more_o benefit_n their_o head_n may_v be_v in_o england_n but_o sure_o their_o heart_n be_v in_o rome_n deceive_v themselves_o aswell_o in_o undervalew_v the_o benefit_n they_o have_v as_o in_o expect_v that_o they_o have_v not_o nor_o be_v ever_o like_a to_o have_v the_o fair_a pretext_n and_o promise_n make_v they_o from_o rome_n be_v like_o the_o apothecary_n box_n ha●●ng_v catholicon_n set_v on_o their_o front_n in_o capital_a letter_n as_o if_o they_o contain_v a_o sovereign_a medicine_n for_o all_o disease_n but_o within_o be_v full_a of_o deadly_a poison_n or_o like_o the_o apple_n of_o sodom_n which_o be_v to_o look_v to_o beautiful_a bu●_n be_v touch_v only_o with_o the_o finger_n present_o be_v turn_v into_o dust_n the_o first_o apple_n you_o present_v the_o commons_o if_o they_o yield_v to_o the_o reentertain_v of_o popish_a religion_n be_v increase_v of_o wealth_n but_o before_o we_o go_v any_o far_o in_o the_o trial_n of_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v desire_v all_o ingenuous_a papist_n right_o to_o inform_v both_o themselves_o and_o other_o what_o the_o two_o monk_n matthew_n paris_n and_o matthew_n of_o westminster_n have_v leave_v upon_o record_n touch_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n most_o intolerable_a exaction_n in_o this_o kingdom_n while_o his_o authority_n here_o prevail_v and_o then_o to_o judge_v indifferent_o whether_o by_o submit_v our_o neck_n to_o that_o yoke_n which_o our_o father_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v it_o be_v likely_a the_o wealth_n of_o our_o land_n shall_v be_v increase_v that_o which_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n pronounce_v touch_v our_o country_n be_v doubtless_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o all_o i_o speak_v of_o latter_a time_n verè_fw-la hortus_fw-la noster_fw-la deliciarum_fw-la est_fw-la anglia_fw-it verè_fw-la puteus_fw-la inexhaustus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ubi_fw-la multa_fw-la abundant_a de_fw-fr multis_fw-la multa_fw-la possunt_fw-la extorqueri_fw-la england_n be_v our_o paradise_n of_o pleasure_n a_o well_o never_o to_o be_v draw_v dry_a and_o where_o much_o abound_v much_o may_v be_v take_v it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o innocent_a the_o iv._o report_v by_o ma●thew_n paris_n anno_fw-la 1245._o about_o which_o time_n s._n edmond_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n undertake_v a_o voyage_n to_o rome_n to_o complain_v of_o the_o great_a vexation_n and_o extortion_n offer_v the_o clergy_n and_o people_n by_o cardinal_n otho_n his_o legate_n who_o hide_v himself_o in_o the_o tower_n of_o ousnie_n abbey_n for_o fear_n of_o a_o tumult_n of_o the_o scholar_n of_o oxford_n they_o term_v he_o usurer_n simonist_n rent-rack_a money-thirster_n perverter_n of_o the_o king_n subverter_n of_o the_o kingdom_n enrich_v stranger_n with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o english_a but_o edmund_n return_v home_o without_o success_n in_o his_o complaint_n and_o weary_a of_o his_o life_n in_o england_n by_o reason_n that_o he_o can_v not_o redress_v the_o pope_n oppression_n make_v choice_n of_o a_o voluntary_a banishment_n at_o pountney_n in_o france_n where_o he_o die_v with_o the_o honour_n and_o opinion_n of_o a_o saint_n not_o long_o after_o his_o holiness_n desirous_a to_o see_v england_n cause_v his_o cardinal_n to_o write_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o king_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o thing_n tend_v much_o to_o his_o honour_n and_o safety_n and_o to_o his_o kingdom_n immortal_a glory_n to_o enjoy_v the_o lord_n pope_n presence_n who_o do_v long_o to_o view_v the_o rarity_n of_o westminster_n and_o the_o riches_n of_o london_n but_o the_o king_n counsel_n tell_v he_o plain_o that_o the_o roman_a rapine_n and_o simony_n have_v enough_o stain_v the_o english_a purity_n though_o the_o pope_n himself_o come_v not_o personal_o to_o spoil_v and_o prey_n upon_o the_o wealth_n of_o this_o church_n and_o kingdom_n the_o like_a denial_n of_o entrance_n he_o have_v find_v both_o in_o france_n and_o arragon_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v like_o a_o mouse_n in_o a_o satchel_n or_o a_o snake_n in_o one_o bosom_n who_o but_o ill_o repay_v their_o host_n for_o their_o lodging_n and_o the_o infamy_n of_o his_o court_n deserve_v none_o other_o who_o filth_n say_v our_o monk_n scent_n forth_o a_o steam_n and_o stench_n as_o high_a as_o the_o very_a cloud_n these_o and_o worse_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n usurpation_n here_o in_o england_n by_o impose_v continual_a tax_n and_o tallage_n be_v sometime_o the_o ten_o sometime_o the_o fifteen_o sometime_o the_o three_o sometime_o the_o moiety_n of_o all_o the_o good_n both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n under_o colour_n of_o maintain_v the_o pope_n holy_a war_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o be_v then_o
lawful_a to_o the_o confessor_n to_o publish_v that_o which_o he_o hear_v in_o confession_n but_o none_o say_v he_o of_o those_o holy_a father_n ever_o decree_v that_o constitution_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n with_o such_o strictness_n as_o thereby_o to_o make_v the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_v they_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o if_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n enjoin_v silence_n and_o the_o law_n of_o god_n utterance_n we_o shall_v rather_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n they_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o david_n be_v commend_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o who_o proper_o belong_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o for_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o shewbread_n which_o otherwise_o be_v not_o lawful_a say_v christ_n for_o he_o to_o eat_v rather_o than_o he_o will_v suffer_v himself_o to_o starve_v with_o hunger_n to_o like_o effect_n be_v that_o which_o my_o lord_n of_o ely_n have_v in_o his_o last_o book_n against_o bellarmine_n 326._o let_v that_o reverence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o that_o seal_n be_v preserve_v inviolate_a but_o towards_o penitent_n not_o wilful_a proceeder_n in_o their_o mischievous_a plot_n neither_o be_v that_o say_v he_o the_o seal_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n but_o of_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n with_o which_o so_o horrible_a villainy_n be_v mask_v but_o will_n mr._n doctor_n say_v these_o be_v but_o the_o opinion_n of_o private_a man_n i_o demand_v the_o authority_n of_o your_o church_n for_o the_o seal_n of_o secrecy_n but_o if_o he_o have_v ●in_v as_o skilful_a in_o the_o decree_n &_o canon_n of_o our_o church_n as_o he_o will_v bear_v we_o in_o hand_n he_o be_v he_o will_v sure_o have_v forbear_v that_o demand_n the_o 113._o can._n of_o those_o which_o be_v agree_v upon_o in_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 160●_n &_o ratify_v by_o his_o majesty_n royal_a assent_n conclude_v thus_o provide_v always_o that_o if_o any_o man_n confess_v his_o secret_a &_o hide_a sin_n to_o the_o minister_n for_o the_o unburthen_v of_o his_o conscience_n and_o to_o receive_v spiritual_a consolation_n and_o ease_n of_o mind_n from_o he_o we_o do_v not_o any_o way_n canon_n bind_v the_o say_a minister_n by_o this_o our_o constitution_n but_o do_v straight_o charge_v and_o admonish_v he_o that_o he_o do_v not_o at_o any_o time_n reveal_v and_o make_v know_v to_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o any_o crime_n or_o offence_n so_o commit_v to_o his_o trust_n &_o secrecy_n except_o they_o be_v such_o crime_n as_o by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n his_o own_o life_n may_v be_v call_v into_o question_n for_o conceal_v they_o under_o pain_n of_o irregularity_n so_o that_o neither_o be_v mr._n doctor_n assertion_n true_a that_o the_o people_n with_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o possibility_n of_o confess_v though_o they_o be_v from_o the_o necessity_n nor_o his_o reason_n because_o we_o have_v take_v away_o the_o seal_n of_o secrecy_n the_o abuse_n be_v only_o by_o we_o remould_v but_o the_o use_n aswell_o by_o public_a authority_n as_o private_a opinion_n retain_v and_o maintain_v but_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n the_o liberty_n which_o the_o people_n have_v gain_v by_o separation_n from_o rome_n stand_v not_o so_o much_o in_o forbearance_n of_o confession_n right_o use_v as_o in_o that_o liberty_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v make_v they_o free_a 1._o for_o if_o the_o son_n have_v make_v they_o free_a then_o be_v they_o free_a indeed_o if_o they_o entangle_v not_o themselves_o again_o with_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n &_o my_o counsel_n be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n there_o advise_v stand_v fast_o and_o to_o like_a effect_n though_o in_o another_o place_n and_o case_n be_v thou_o free_a seek_v not_o to_o be_v bind_v and_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n shall_v be_v uponthem_n and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n b._n c._n 43._o as_o for_o the_o liberty_n of_o make_v law_n in_o church-matter_n the_o common_a lawyer_n may_v perhaps_o make_v a_o advantage_n of_o it_o and_o threfore_o great_o stand_v upon_o it_o but_o to_o the_o common_a people_n it_o be_v no_o pleasure_n at_o all_o but_o rather_o a_o great_a burden_n for_o the_o great_a matter_n multitude_n of_o statute_n which_o have_v be_v make_v since_o the_o schism_n which_o be_v more_o than_o five_o time_n so_o many_o that_o ever_o be_v make_v before_o since_o the_o report_n name_n of_o parliament_n be_v in_o england_n have_v cause_v also_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o lawyer_n all_o which_o must_v live_v by_o the_o commons_o and_o commons_o raise_v new_a family_n which_o can_v be_v do_v without_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o old_a and_o if_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o court_n of_o confession_n be_v in_o request_n the_o lawyer_n market_n will_v soon_o be_v mar_v and_o therefore_o most_o of_o your_o lawyer_n in_o this_o point_n be_v puritan_n and_o do_v still_o furnish_v the_o parliament_n with_o grievance_n against_o the_o clergy_n as_o know_v very_o well_o that_o their_o own_o glory_n come_v at_o the_o first_o from_o the_o court_n court_n infidel_n and_o therefore_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o come_v at_o the_o first_o from_o the_o court_n christian_n i_o speak_v not_o against_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n which_o since_o king_n ethelberts_n time_n be_v all_o tongue_n catholic_a nor_o against_o the_o honest_a lawyer_n of_o england_n i_o know_v many_o and_o honour_v all_o good_a man_n among_o they_o and_o do_v look_v for_o parson_n better_a time_n by_o the_o learning_n wisdom_n and_o moderation_n of_o the_o chief_a but_o i_o be_o very_o persuade_v that_o the_o pretend_a liberty_n of_o the_o commons_o to_o make_v law_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n do_v burden_n the_o commonwealth_n and_o do_v trouble_v and_o prejudice_n your_o majesty_n and_o pleasure_n none_o at_o all_o but_o the_o puritan_n and_o petti-fogging_a lawyer_n that_o will_v fain_o fetch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o his_o common_a law_n from_o the_o saxon_n that_o be_v before_o king_n ethelbert_n so_o that_o whether_o we_o respect_v the_o spiritual_a instruction_n and_o comfort_n or_o the_o temporal_a wealth_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n if_o the_o puritan_n preacher_n and_o the_o puritan_n lawyer_n who_o both_o seek_v the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o church_n and_o deceive_v and_o consume_v the_o people_n will_v let_v they_o alone_o there_o will_v quick_o appear_v no_o reason_n of_o their_o state_n at_o all_o why_o they_o shall_v hate_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v so_o comfortable_a and_o beneficial_a unto_o they_o or_o maintain_v the_o schism_n that_o with_o sugar_a speech_n and_o counterfeit_a face_n do_v so_o much_o abuse_v they_o g._n h._n 4●_n the_o next_o privilege_n which_o you_o pretend_v to_o the_o commons_o be_v the_o liberty_n of_o make_v law_n in_o church-matter_n as_o if_o they_o can_v make_v law_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o lord_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a or_o they_o all_o without_o the_o royal_a assent_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o statute_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o erroneous_a opinion_n &_o devilish_a practice_n from_o rome_n have_v cause_v a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o and_o the_o malice_n both_o of_o the_o devil_n as_o know_v his_o time_n to_o be_v but_o short_a and_o of_o man_n in_o this_o last_o and_o worst_a age_n of_o the_o world_n general_o increase_v must_v needs_o give_v occasion_n to_o more_o law_n he_o that_o shall_v look_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n may_v find_v that_o those_o law_n multiply_v fast_o from_o constantine_n time_n to_o the_o end_n of_o justinians_n which_o be_v about_o 200._o year_n then_o in_o four_o nay_o in_o five_o hundred_o year_n before_o though_o the_o one_o be_v under_o a_o christian_a government_n and_o the_o other_o under_o a_o heathenish_a wh●_n take_v their_o beginning_n as_o we_o know_v only_o from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o twelve_o table_n which_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o greece_n do_v not_o god_n himself_o beside_o those_o twelve_o precept_n ground_v upon_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n add_v many_o law_n thereunto_o for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o that_o which_o he_o do_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o moses_n unto_o that_o special_a people_n the_o same_o power_n have_v he_o leave_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o particular_a church_n conditional_o all_o their_o law_n be_v conformable_a or_o at_o leastwise_o not_o repugnant_a unto_o his_o law_n the_o rule_n and_o square_v of_o all_o humane_a law_n how_o have_v the_o canon_n law_n itself_o to_o which_o mr._n doctor_n drift_n be_v whole_o to_o resubmit_v we_o in_o church_n government_n grow_v up_o to_o a_o great_a bulk_n and_o massy_a body_n and_o
how_o have_v their_o multitude_n entangle_v the_o christian_a world_n yet_o must_v no_o man_n dare_v open_a his_o mouth_n to_o complain_v of_o that_o we_o read_v of_o luther_n that_o when_o he_o hear_v his_o book_n by_o public_a order_n be_v burn_v in_o rome_n he_o as_o solemn_o burn_v the_o canon_n law_n at_o wittenberg_n we_o have_v not_o proceed_v neither_o think_v we_o it_o fit_a to_o proceed_v so_o far_o but_o have_v rather_o choose_v out_o of_o that_o dunghill_n to_o seek_v for_o a_o pearl_n which_o have_v find_v we_o be_v content_a to_o keep_v and_o as_o occasion_n serve_v to_o make_v use_n of_o we_o have_v not_o whole_o abrogate_a the_o canon_n law_n but_o we_o retain_v it_o in_o part_n though_o not_o as_o receive_n strength_n from_o the_o pope_n authority_n who_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o know_v have_v no_o more_o right_a of_o make_v law_n for_o we_o than_o we_o have_v for_o he_o but_o from_o the_o governor_n of_o our_o own_o church_n neither_o do_v the_o 8._o king_n of_o france_n in_o the_o erection_n of_o their_o university_n receive_v it_o any_o otherwise_o then_o to_o use_v at_o their_o own_o discretion_n not_o to_o oblige_v they_o as_o a_o law_n or_o if_o it_o do_v the_o power_n of_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o their_o own_o approbation_n not_o from_o rome_n imposition_n and_o therefore_o have_v they_o express_o and_o by_o name_n forbid_v the_o paris_n 6_o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n to_o be_v read_v in_o their_o university_n as_o law_n as_o be_v express_o against_o the_o law_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n now_o if_o they_o refuse_v one_o part_n they_o may_v in_o my_o judgement_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n if_o they_o find_v it_o inconvenient_a or_o disagreeable_a reject_v the_o whole_a and_o i_o think_v they_o will_v not_o stand_v much_o if_o occasion_n serve_v upon_o the_o cast_n off_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n who_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n yet_o be_v induce_v to_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n a_o notable_a instance_n hereof_o we_o have_v even_o in_o the_o depth_n of_o popery_n in_o our_o own_o country_n at_o the_o parliament_n of_o merton_n it_o be_v propose_v that_o child_n bear_v before_o marriage_n may_v be_v adjudge_v legitimate_a according_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o canon_n law_n they_o all_o make_v answer_v with_o one_o voice_n nolumus_fw-la leges_fw-la angliae_fw-la mutari_fw-la we_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o the_o change_n of_o the_o law_n of_o england_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o receive_v not_o in_o those_o very_a time_n all_o the_o pope_n canon_n as_o law_n and_o those_o which_o they_o receive_v they_o have_v not_o the_o force_n of_o law_n because_o the_o pope_n impose_v they_o but_o because_o themselves_o entertain_v they_o in_o that_o nature_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n ratify_v they_o mr._n doctor_n need_v not_o marvel_v then_o if_o our_o parliament_n now_o make_v law_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n as_o they_o ratify_v those_o the_o summons_n of_o parliament_n ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o v._o and_o how_o long_o before_o i_o know_v not_o have_v in_o one_o constant_a form_n and_o tenor_n make_v mention_v that_o the_o parliament_n be_v summon_v to_o consult_v de_fw-fr negotijs_fw-la statum_fw-la &_o defensionem_fw-la regni_fw-la angliae_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n contigentibus_fw-la of_o business_n concern_v the_o state_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o church_n of_o england_n among_o other_o king_n s._n edward_n begin_v his_o law_n with_o this_o protestation_n that_o it_o be_v his_o princely_a care_n ut_fw-la populum_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o super_fw-la omne_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la regat_fw-la &_o gubernet_fw-la to_o rule_v and_o govern_v god_n people_n and_o above_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_n before_o he_o 712._o ina_n k●ng_v of_o the_o west_n saxon_n profess_v that_o he_o call_v a_o council_n of_o his_o bishop_n and_o senator_n that_o they_o may_v consult_v of_o matter_n de_fw-fr salute_v animarum_fw-la &_o statu_fw-la regni_fw-la touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o do_v our_o chief_a antiquary_n right_o distinguish_v our_o court_n into_o ecclesiastical_a civil_a and_o mix_v which_o he_o make_v the_o parliament_n as_o be_v compound_v of_o both_o and_o consequent_o capable_a to_o determine_v of_o matter_n of_o both_o nature_n though_o i_o must_v needs_o say_v the_o case_n be_v somewhat_o alter_v from_o ●ormer_a time_n when_o not_o only_o the_o arch-bishops_a the_o bishop_n the_o abbot_n and_o prior_n who_o number_n be_v double_a to_o th●t_v which_o now_o it_o be_v and_o little_a inferior_a to_o the_o ●e●porall_a lord_n sit_v in_o they_o igh_a house_n of_o pa●liament_n and_o have_v conclude_v voice_n but_o the_o body_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o cathedral_n church_n have_v their_o proctor_n among_o the_o commons_o as_o may_v be_v collect_v by_o diverse_a of_o our_o 11._o statute_n in_o print_n but_o no●_n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a in_o the_o high_a house_n be_v lessen_v and_o the_o other_o be_v clean_o exclude_v the_o low_a house_n i_o think_v it_o shall_v stand_v with_o reason_n and_o equity_n that_o th●_n liberty_n of_o make_v of_o law_n or_o canon_n in_o church-matter_n shall_v be_v refer_v and_o reserve_v by_o his_o majesty_n gracious_a favour_n and_o with_o his_o royal_a assent_n to_o churchman_n assemble_v in_o their_o convocation_n who_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v most_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o establish_v good_a and_o wholesome_a constitution_n and_o to_o reform_v what_o be_v amiss_o thus_o in_o the_o year_n 1603_o at_o his_o majesty_n first_o entrance_n into_o this_o kingdom_n by_o virtue_n of_o hi●_n prerogative_n royal_a and_o supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a do_v he_o grant_v licence_n and_o free_a power_n unto_o they_o to_o treat_v and_o agree_v upon_o such_o ordinance_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v necessary_a and_o convenient_a for_o the_o honour_n and_o service_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o the_o good_a and_o quiet_a of_o the_o church_n and_o afterward_o be_v by_o they_o agree_v upon_o and_o thorough_o consider_v by_o his_o ma●estie_n out_o of_o his_o princely_a inclination_n to_o maintain_v the_o present_a estate_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o not_o only_o confirm_v they_o by_o his_o royal_a assent_n but_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n command_v the_o entertainment_n and_o execution_n of_o they_o through_o the_o realm_n another_o matter_n you_o fling_v at_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o lawyer_n at_o this_o day_n as_o i●_n they_o be_v exceed_o increase_v but_o if_o you_o have_v read_v and_o well_o observe_v foretescue_v observation_n in_o this_o behalf_n 49._o who_o write_v about_o 200._o year_n since_o be_v then_o chief_a justice_n of_o england_n and_o have_v compare_v this_o time_n to_o that_o you_o will_v have_v find_v that_o the_o number_n of_o that_o pro●ession_n in_o those_o day_n be_v little_o less_o than_o at_o this_o day_n certain_o their_o college_n be_v then_o more_o than_o now_o his_o word_n be_v sunt_fw-la namque_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la decem_fw-la hospitia_fw-la minora_fw-la et_fw-la quand●que_fw-la verò_fw-la plura_fw-la quae_fw-la nominantur_fw-la hospitia_fw-la cancellariae_fw-la ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la quodlibet_fw-la pertinent_a centum_fw-la student_n ad_fw-la minus_fw-la et_fw-la ad_fw-la aliqua_fw-la eorum_fw-la maior_fw-la in_o multo_fw-la numerus_fw-la licet_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o eye_n semper_fw-la conveniant_fw-la maiorun_n quatuor_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la minimun_fw-la eorum_fw-la pertinent_a in_fw-la forma_fw-la praenot_v at_o a_o ducenti_fw-la student_n aut_fw-la propè_fw-la they_o have_v ten_o lesser_a house_n which_o they_o call_v inn_n of_o chancery_n to_o every_o of_o which_o belong_v one_o hundred_o student_n at_o least_o and_o to_o some_o many_o more_o though_o they_o be_v not_o all_o continual_o resident_a in_o they_o of_o the_o big_a house_n they_o have_v ●oure_n and_o to_o each_o of_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n belong_v two_o hundred_o student_n or_o thereabouts_o whereras_n at_o this_o present_a in_o some_o of_o the_o inn_n of_o court_n there_o be_v not_o 260._o and_o in_o the_o great_a little_a above_o 300._o in_o commons_o at_o one_o time_n and_o for_o the_o ●nnes_n of_o chancery_n they_o be_v but_o eight_o in_o number_n and_o in_o most_o of_o they_o not_o above_o 50._o in_o commons_o together_o but_o if_o they_o be_v increase_v it_o may_v well_o be_v impute_v not_o so_o much_o to_o our_o multitude_n of_o statute_n as_o to_o our_o long_a peace_n the_o nurse_n of_o homebred_a quarrel_n or_o to_o the_o dissolution_n of_o our_o monastery_n and_o that_o as_o i_o conceive_v for_o four_o reason_n first_o for_o that_o whereas_o in_o those_o day_n when_o the_o monastery_n stand_v many_o young_a brother_n do_v
betake_v themselves_o to_o monastical_a life_n they_o do_v now_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o law_n second_o for_o that_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o monastery_n be_v then_o in_o mortmain_n can_v not_o be_v alien_v whereas_o now_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o layman_n they_o be_v daily_o buy_v and_o sell_v which_o set_v the_o lawyer_n double_o a-work_o first_o in_o 〈◊〉_d conveyance_n for_o they_o and_o then_o in_o alteration_n about_o they_o three_o the_o abbot_n and_o prior_n foresee_v their_o ruin_n set_v many_o lease_n under_o hand_n which_o can_v not_o but_o breed_v a_o great_a intanglement_n in_o their_o possession_n four_o and_o last_o the_o disperse_v of_o they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o so_o many_o particular_a man_n rest_v before_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o corporation_n can_v but_o prove_v the_o cause_n of_o much_o strife_n and_o consequent_o of_o many_o suit_n and_o controversy_n no_o marvel_v then_o if_o by_o our_o increase_n of_o people_n other_o trade_n and_o profession_n increase_v lawyer_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a but_o if_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o court_n of_o confession_n be_v you_o say_v in_o request_n the_o lawyer_n market_n will_v soon_o be_v mar_v what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o those_o country_n where_o both_o these_o be_v in_o request_n and_o yet_o do_v their_o lawyer_n both_o increase_n and_o flourish_v more_o than_o we_o and_o when_o both_o these_o be_v in_o request_n among_o we_o their_o number_n as_o i_o show_v before_o be_v little_o less_o if_o not_o as_o great_a or_o more_o than_o now_o it_o be_v if_o ●_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o that_o reverend_a judge_n aright_o and_o if_o most_o of_o our_o lawyer_n be_v in_o this_o point_n puritan_n that_o be_v in_o refuse_v the_o rescript_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o your_o seal_n of_o confession_n as_o a_o divine_a ordinance_n for_o my_o part_n i_o blame_v they_o not_o but_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o our_o own_o church_n collect_v by_o william_n linwood_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o 5_o and_o afterward_o by_o 32._o select_a person_n bishop_n inferior_a divine_n and_o canonist_n depute_v to_o that_o work_n by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o &_o after_o his_o death_n by_o his_o son_n king_n edward_n the_o six_o as_o also_o our_o present_a canon_n now_o in_o force_n i_o have_v know_v some_o of_o our_o lawyer_n much_o esteem_n but_o if_o they_o furnish_v the_o parliament_n with_o unjust_a and_o unnecessary_a grievance_n i_o defend_v they_o not_o but_o leave_v they_o to_o make_v their_o own_o apology_n only_o thus_o much_o i_o say_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o a_o profession_n be_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o few_o special_o be_v impute_v by_o those_o who_o desire_v most_o to_o fish_n in_o our_o trouble_a water_n to_o warm_v their_o hand_n at_o the_o fire_n of_o our_o contention_n and_o to_o rip_v up_o our_o wound_n if_o we_o have_v any_o with_o smile_v countenance_n hoc_fw-la ithacus_n velit_fw-la &_o magno_fw-la mercentur_fw-la atridae_n now_o if_o the_o one_o encroach_v upon_o the_o other_o far_o than_o their_o proper_a and_o limit_a bound_n permit_v i_o excuse_v they_o not_o but_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o restraint_n by_o his_o power_n upon_o who_o they_o 1609._o depend_v both_o and_o from_o who_o they_o both_o receive_v their_o limit_n and_o be_v last_o whereas_o you_o make_v he_o a_o pettifogging_a lawyer_n that_o will_v fetch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o saxon_n that_o be_v before_o king_n ethelbert_n herein_o you_o make_v that_o famous_a judge_n before_o name_v who_o in_o his_o time_n they_o esteem_v a_o father_n of_o the_o law_n and_o a_o learned_a antiquary_n a_o pettifogging_a lawyer_n in_o as_o much_o as_o in_o his_o book_n above_o mention_v he_o thus_o speak_v 17._o the_o realm_n of_o england_n be_v first_o inhabit_v by_o the_o britane_n next_o after_o they_o the_o roman_n have_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o land_n and_o then_o again_o the_o britane_n possess_v it_o after_o who_o the_o saxon_n invade_v it_o and_o change_v the_o name_n thereof_o do_v for_o britain_n call_v it_o england_n after_o they_o for_o a_o certain_a time_n the_o dane_n have_v the_o dominion_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o then_o the_o saxon_n again_o but_o last_o of_o all_o the_o norman_n subdue_v it_o who_o descent_n continue_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n at_o this_o present_a and_o in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o these_o several_a nation_n and_o of_o their_o king_n this_o realm_n be_v still_o rule_v with_o the_o self_n same_o custom_n that_o now_o it_o be_v which_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v right_o good_a some_o of_o those_o king_n move_v either_o with_o pride_n or_o with_o reason_n or_o affection_n will_v have_v change_v they_o or_o altogether_o abolish_v they_o and_o special_o the_o roman_n who_o do_v judge_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n by_o their_o own_o law_n likewise_o will_v other_o of_o the_o foresayed_a king_n have_v do_v who_o by_o the_o sword_n only_o possess_v the_o realm_n of_o england_n may_v with_o the_o same_o power_n have_v extinguish_v the_o law_n thereof_o and_o touch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o thesame_n neither_o be_v the_o roman_a civil_a law_n by_o so_o long_a continuance_n of_o ancient_a time_n confirm_v nor_o yet_o the_o law_n of_o the_o venetian_n which_o above_o all_o other_o be_v report_v to_o be_v of_o most_o antiquity_n for_o as_o much_o as_o there_o island_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o britane_n be_v not_o then_o inhabit_v as_o rome_n itself_o be_v then_o also_o unbuild_v neither_o be_v the_o law_n of_o any_o which_o worship_v god_n so_o ancient_a wherefore_o the_o contrary_a be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v nor_o think_v but_o that_o the_o english_a custom_n be_v very_o good_a yea_o of_o all_o other_o the_o very_o best_a neither_o can_v i_o conceive_v any_o other_o reason_n mr._n doctor_n have_v thus_o bitter_o to_o envy_v against_o our_o law_n as_o if_o they_o come_v from_o the_o court_n infidel_n and_o be_v a_o burden_n to_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o because_o some_o of_o they_o be_v bend_v against_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n and_o the_o admission_n on_o of_o his_o emissary_n from_o rome_n and_o as_o the_o canon_n law_n carry_v up_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n fifteen_o cubit_n above_o the_o high_a mountaine●_n of_o sovereignty_n so_o be_v the_o common_a law_n so_o favourable_a and_o advantageous_a in_o extend_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o king_n as_o his_o majesty_n profess_v for_o a_o king_n of_o england_n to_o despise_v the_o common_a law_n be_v to_o neglect_v his_o own_o crown_n and_o a_o little_a after_o protest_v that_o if_o it_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n to_o choose_v a_o new_a law_n for_o this_o kingdom_n he_o will_v not_o only_o prefer_v it_o before_o any_o other_o national_a law_n but_o even_o before_o the_o very_a judicial_a law_n of_o moses_n so_o that_o whether_o we_o expect_v spiritual_a instruction_n and_o comfort_n or_o the_o semporall_a wealth_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n if_o the_o jesuite_n and_o seminarie_n priest_n who_o both_o seek_v the_o overthrow_n of_o our_o church_n and_o deceive_v and_o consume_v the_o people_n will_v let_v they_o alone_o there_o will_v quick_o appear_v no_o reason_n of_o state_n at_o all_o why_o they_o shall_v desire_v reconciliation_n to_o rome_n which_o with_o sugar_a speech_n and_o counterfeit_a face_n do_v so_o much_o abuse_v they_o or_o loathe_v the_o reformation_n which_o be_v every_o way_n so_o comfortable_a and_o beneficial_a unto_o they_o b._n c._n 44._o i_o be_o therefore_o in_o very_a assure_a hope_n that_o by_o my_o come_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n beside_o the_o satisfy_n and_o save_v of_o my_o own_o soul_n i_o shall_v do_v no_o ill_a service_n to_o your_o majesty_n neither_o in_o respect_n of_o yourself_o nor_o your_o child_n nor_o in_o respect_n of_o your_o lord_n and_o commons_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o any_o of_o these_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o dissuade_v unity_n there_o be_v only_o the_o clergy_n leave_v which_o if_o caluinisme_n may_v go_v on_o and_o prevail_v as_o it_o do_v shall_v not_o in_o the_o next_o age_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v satisfy_v and_o there_o be_v little_a reason_n that_o any_o man_n that_o love_v the_o clergy_n shall_v desire_v to_o satisfy_v such_o caluinist_n clergyman_n as_o do_v underhand_o favour_v caluinist_n and_o maintain_v such_o section_n point_n of_o doctrine_n much_o as_o if_o your_o majesty_n favour_n be_v not_o will_v out_o of_o hand_n overthrow_v the_o clergy_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o they_o set_v up_o a_o few_o stipendiary_a preacher_n
g._n h._n 44._o and_o we_o be_v on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o confident_a that_o in_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o forsake_v your_o own_o in_o which_o you_o be_v breed_v and_o baptize_v beside_o the_o endanger_n of_o your_o own_o soul_n you_o have_v do_v no_o good_a service_n to_o his_o majesty_n neither_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o nor_o his_o child_n neither_o of_o his_o lord_n nor_o commons_o in_o persuade_v unity_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o first_o she_o can_v be_v persuade_v to_o the_o embrace_n of_o the_o same_o verity_n in_o religion_n with_o us._n there_o be_v only_o the_o clergy_n leave_v which_o if_o popery_n shall_v go_v on_o and_o prevail_v as_o you_o desire_v it_o shall_v shall_v not_o in_o the_o next_o age_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v satisfy_v or_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n but_o there_o be_v little_a reason_n that_o any_o man_n that_o love_v the_o clergy_n shall_v desire_v to_o satisfy_v such_o clergyman_n as_o yourself_o while_o you_o be_v among_o we_o who_o under_o hand_n favour_n papist_n and_o maintain_v such_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o if_o his_o majesty_n authority_n be_v not_o will_v out_o of_o hand_n overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n establish_v and_o in_o stead_n thereof_o reestablish_v the_o papacy_n b._n c._n 45._o there_o never_o be_v be_v nor_o shall_v be_v any_o wellsetled_a state_n in_o the_o world_n either_o christian_a or_o heathen_a but_o the_o clergy_n and_o priesthood_n be_v be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o government_n depend_v upon_o none_o but_o he_o only_o who_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v their_o god_n but_o where_o caluinisme_n prevail_v three_o or_o four_o stipendiary_a minister_n that_o must_v preach_v as_o it_o shall_v please_v mr._n testify_v maior_n and_o his_o brethren_n may_v serve_v for_o a_o whole_a city_n and_o indeed_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v true_a it_o be_v but_o folly_n for_o any_o state_n to_o maintain_v more_o for_o if_o god_n have_v predestinate_v a_o certain_a number_n to_o be_v save_v without_o any_o condition_n at_o all_o of_o their_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o faith_n or_o their_o persevere_v therein_o by_o good_a work_n if_o god_n have_v reprobate_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n without_o any_o respect_n at_o all_o of_o their_o infidelity_n heresy_n or_o wicked_a life_n if_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o assure_a persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o predestination_n to_o glory_n by_o he_o if_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o sign_n and_o badge_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o a_o man_n have_v before_o by_o the_o carnal_a covenant_n of_o his_o parent_n faith_n if_o priesthood_n can_v do_v nothing_o but_o preach_v the_o word_n as_o they_o call_v it_o which_o lay_v layman_n must_v judge_v of_o and_o may_v preach_v to_o if_o they_o will_v where_o occasion_n serve_v if_o the_o study_n and_o knowledge_n of_o antiquity_n universality_n and_o consent_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o every_o man_n may_v expound_v scripture_n as_o his_o own_o spirit_n shall_v move_v he_o if_o i_o say_v these_o and_o such_o like_a opinion_n be_v as_o true_a as_o they_o be_v among_o the_o caluinist_n in_o the_o world_n common_a and_o in_o england_n too_o much_o favour_v and_o maintain_v there_o will_v certain_o appear_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o unto_o your_o parliament_n whensoever_o question_n your_o majesty_n or_o your_o successor_n shall_v please_v to_o ask_v they_o why_o they_o shall_v be_v at_o so_o great_a a_o charge_n as_o they_o be_v to_o maintain_v so_o needless_a a_o party_n as_o these_o opinion_n do_v make_v the_o clergy_n to_o be_v they_o can_v have_v a_o great_a many_o more_o priesthood_n sermon_n a_o great_a deal_n better_a cheap_a and_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o caluinisme_n the_o clergy_n do_v answer_n no_o other_o service_n they_o that_o do_v in_o england_n favour_n and_o maintain_v those_o opinion_n and_o suppress_v and_o disgrace_v those_o that_o do_v confute_v they_o they_o although_o themselves_o can_v be_v content_a to_o be_v law_n lord_n and_o to_o go_v in_o rochets_fw-mi be_v indeed_o the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n for_o the_o clergy_n they_o may_v easy_o turn_v sacrament_n lay_v and_o live_v as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n full_a of_o compassion_n and_o commiseration_n to_o see_v that_o by_o these_o false_a and_o wicked_a opinion_n the_o devil_n the_o father_n of_o these_o and_o all_o other_o lie_v do_v daily_o take_v possession_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o subject_n both_o of_o clergy_n and_o laity_n undertake_v these_o kind_n of_o clergy_n man_n i_o confess_v i_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v any_o other_o way_n then_o as_o i_o have_v always_o do_v that_o be_v by_o the_o most_o friendly_a and_o plain_a confutation_n of_o their_o error_n to_o show_v they_o the_o truth_n as_o for_o other_o clergy_n man_n that_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o law_n as_o well_o for_o their_o doctrine_n as_o for_o their_o discipline_n if_o they_o be_v good_a scholar_n and_o temperate_a temperate_a man_n as_o i_o religion_n know_v many_o of_o they_o be_v they_o can_v but_o in_o their_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a religion_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o fear_v of_o loss_n or_o disgrace_n to_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n they_o will_v be_v as_o glad_a as_o myself_o that_o a_o more_o happy_a temperate_a course_n may_v be_v hold_v and_o more_o liberty_n afford_v to_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a religion_n in_o england_n these_o clergy_n man_n i_o be_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v desirous_a to_o satisfy_v not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o they_o wife_n and_o child_n who_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o condemn_v or_o mislike_v as_o that_o i_o do_v account_v myself_o course_n one_o of_o they_o and_o i_o desire_v nothing_o more_o in_o this_o world_n then_o in_o the_o toleration_n of_o catholic_a religion_n to_o live_v and_o it_o die_v among_o they_o and_o therefore_o i_o have_v have_v so_o great_a care_n in_o this_o point_n as_o before_o i_o do_v church_n submit_v myself_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o receive_v rome_n assurance_n from_o some_o of_o the_o great_a that_o if_o his_o majesty_n will_v admit_v the_o ancient_a subordination_n of_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n unto_o that_o mother_n pope_n by_o who_o authority_n all_o other_o church_n in_o england_n at_o the_o first_o be_v and_o still_o be_v subordinate_a unto_o canterbury_n and_o the_o first_o free_a use_n of_o that_o sacrament_n for_o which_o preach_v especial_o all_o the_o church_n in_o christendom_n be_v first_o found_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o part_n will_v rome_n confirm_v the_o interest_n of_o all_o those_o that_o have_v present_a possession_n in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a live_n in_o england_n and_o will_v also_o permit_v the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n in_o english_a for_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n with_o very_o little_a or_o no_o alteration_n and_o for_o the_o contentment_n and_o security_n of_o your_o majesty_n he_o will_v give_v you_o not_o only_o any_o satisfaction_n but_o all_o the_o honour_n that_o with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o catholic_a religion_n may_v be_v require_v which_o seem_v to_o i_o so_o reasonable_a as_o be_v before_o satisfy_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a religion_n i_o can_v ask_v else_o no_o more_o so_o that_o i_o be_o very_o persuade_v that_o by_o yield_v to_o that_o truth_n which_o i_o can_v not_o deny_v i_o have_v neither_o neglect_v my_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o child_n nor_o my_o respect_n and_o honour_n to_o your_o lord_n and_o commons_o nor_o my_o love_n and_o kindness_n to_o my_o brethren_n honest_a friend_n and_o brethren_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o rather_o that_o my_o example_n and_o my_o prayer_n shall_v do_v good_a unto_o all_o g._n h._n 45._o that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v be_v a_o principal_a member_n of_o the_o body_n popolitike_a we_o grant_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v depend_v on_o none_o but_o he_o only_o who_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v their_o god_n we_o deny_v indeed_o where_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sway_v look_v how_o many_o clergy_n man_n there_o be_v so_o many_o subject_n be_v exempt_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o whole_o depend_v upon_o his_o holiness_n who_o be_v to_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o his_o command_n and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n in_o stead_n of_o their_o god_n but_o for_o we_o non_fw-la habemus_fw-la talem_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la neque_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la we_o depend_v
consequent_n will_v find_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o suspect_v that_o dolu●_n latet_fw-la in_o universalibus_fw-la falsehood_n insist_o upon_o general_n general_n we_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o think_v you_o be_v not_o so_o much_o grieve_v for_o cross_v those_o great_a preacher_n you_o speak_v of_o as_o that_o thereby_o your_o preferment_n be_v cross_v cross_v such_o a_o profound_a demonsration_n be_v that_o of_o bellarmine_n out_o of_o petrus_n damianus_n to_o show_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o pope_n old_a seal_n s._n paul_n be_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o s._n peter_n because_o forsooth_o paul_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o benjamin_n signify_v the_o son_n of_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o for_o this_o he_o quote_v gen._n 35._o and_o 42._o 42._o matth._n 26._o 27._o 27._o john_n 18._o 36._o 36._o it_o seem_v then_o your_o puritan_n for_o you_o tell_v we_o before_o those_o preacher_n be_v such_o may_v be_v a_o very_a honest_a man_n yet_o afterward_o you_o tell_v we_o their_o principle_n be_v such_o as_o overthrow_v all_o honesty_n honesty_n as_o loath_a as_o you_o be_v to_o oppose_v they_o in_o public_a yet_o you_o do_v as_o far_o as_o you_o dare_v as_o yourself_o afterward_o confess_v confess_v the_o faith_n in_o which_o you_o be_v baptize_v be_v the_o ●ame_n which_o now_o be_v profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o i_o be_o sure_a no_o man_n expect_v you_o shall_v oppugn_v oppugn_v luke_n 16._o 26._o 26._o i_o have_v think_v before_o that_o a_o puritan_n and_o a_o caluenist_n &_o a_o creature_n of_o schism_n in_o your_o language_n have_v be_v all_o one_o one_o if_o david_n himself_o be_v a_o schismatic_n as_o you_o make_v he_o how_o be_v the_o creature_n of_o schism_n to_o strong_a for_o he_o he_o those_o who_o you_o call_v temperate_a man_n we_o may_v suspect_v to_o be_v neutral_n make_v of_o lincie_n whoolsie_n neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a but_o halt_v between_o two_o opinion_n 1._o king_n 18._o 21._o 21._o that_o which_o you_o call_v honest_a preach_v of_o the_o truth_n we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o near_a approach_v that_o may_v be_v to_o rom●_n gate_n gate_n herein_o you_o fail_v not_o in_o that_o at_o last_o you_o unmask_v your_o own_o hypocriosie_n hypocriosie_n 2._o king_n 9_o ●_o ●●_o ●●_o jerem._n 51._o 9_o 9_o you_o may_v more_o proper_o have_v apply_v fiery_a to_o your_o desperate_a cath._n for_o such_o be_v their_o practice_n practice_n there_o need_v no_o great_a violence_n to_o aggravate_v the_o heinousness_n of_o that_o plot_n plot_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o in_o the_o next_o chap._n you_o so_o earnest_o labour_v the_o conversion_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o whole_a realm_n exit_fw-la ore●tu●_n condemnaberis_fw-la serve_v nequam_fw-la luke_n 1●_n 22._o 22._o what_o need_v any_o great_a wit_n or_o learning_n for_o the_o justification_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n hold_v no_o point_n express_o contrary_a to_o antiquity_n antiquity_n to_o allow_v the_o people_n image_n for_o religious_a use_n and_o then_o to_o admonish_v they_o that_o they_o take_v heed_n of_o idolatry_n be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v put_v a_o hungry_a horse_n into_o a_o goodly_a pasture_n and_o then_o command_v he_o not_o to_o eat_v or_o a_o child_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o a_o l●dder_n and_o then_o bid_v he_o take_v heed_n of_o a_o fall_n fall_n why_o do_v they_o cover_v they_o in_o lent_n then_o then_o we_o shall_v indeed_o have_v our_o conversation_n among_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n but_o not_o among_o their_o image_n on_o earth_n m._n hooker_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n sect._n 65._o 65._o i_o tell_v you_o before_o you_o be_v prepossess_v with_o prejudice_n which_o make_v you_o object_v so_o weak_o weak_o have_v it_o take_v effect_n they_o will_v have_v abhor_v it_o as_o sixtus_n do_v the_o friar_n murder_v of_o henry_n the_o iii_o of_o france_n in_o the_o consistory_n of_o cardinal_n where_o he_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n redemption_n a_o likely_a matter_n that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v make_v complaint_n in_o a_o judicial_a proceed_n to_o he_o in_o who_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o right_a of_o proceed_v judicial_o in_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o own_o subject_n subject_n all_o those_o writer_n who_o you_o call_v catholic_n do_v so_o condemn_v it_o as_o they_o seem_v rather_o to_o think_v it_o unfortunate_a in_o the_o success_n then_o mischievous_a in_o the_o plot_n plot_n what_o authority_n this_o be_v will_v appear_v in_o pius_n his_o bull_n who_o word_n be_v these_o and_o he_o alone_o have_v he_o make_v chief_a over_o all_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n who_o may_v alone_o root_v out_o destroy_v scatter_v waste_n plant_v and_o build_v that_o the_o faithful_a people_n knit_v together_o with_o the_o band_n of_o mutual_a charity_n may_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n spirit_n how_o can_v your_o hope_n be_v such_o since_o your_o resolution_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o your_o own_o word_n in_o diverse_a passage_n before_o before_o yourself_o within_o a_o few_o line_n after_o acknowledge_v you_o find_v many_o many_o so_o that_o it_o seem_v by_o your_o own_o confession_n the_o great_a corruption_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n see_v by_o god_n wheat_n field_n in_o your_o understanding_n can_v be_v mean_v none_o other_o but_o that_o church_n in_o which_o in_o your_o opinion_n grace_v most_o abound_v abound_v belike_o than_o you_o see_v some_o broad_a difference_n in_o the_o circumstance_n circumstance_n you_o make_v sure_a work_n for_o that_o by_o carry_v over_o store_n of_o money_n with_o you_o &_o by_o obtain_v pension_n from_o the_o pope_n the_o q._n mother_n of_o france_n and_o cardinal_n pe●●on_n pe●●on_n gal._n 2._o 21._o 21._o col._n 2._o 20_o 21_o 22_o 22_o 1._o pet._n 1._o 19_o 19_o it_o may_v be_v those_o affliction_n serve_v to_o free_v you_o from_o purgatory_n as_o you_o presume_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o your_o letter_n otherwise_o i_o see_v not_o why_o you_o shall_v afflict_v yourself_o for_o choose_v the_o only_o suppose_a mean_n of_o your_o salvation_n salvation_n you_o dispute_v with_o such_o learned_a man_n as_o you_o can_v meet_v with_o and_o yet_o avoid_v the_o company_n of_o catholic_n you_o promise_v his_o majesty_n to_o remember_v he_o at_o the_o daily_a oblation_n and_o yet_o you_o abstain_v from_o their_o church_n church_n that_o which_o you_o call_v peace_n be_v a_o betray_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o truth_n and_o 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o you_o call_v a_o reconciliation_n be_v a_o rent_n from_o foreign_a reform_a church_n church_n i_o marvel_v who_o give_v you_o authority_n to_o bring_v m._n casaubon_n over_o from_o france_n france_n have_v receive_v this_o answer_n what_o move_v you_o to_o be_v so_o saucy_a and_o importunate_a to_o move_v his_o majesty_n the_o second_o time_n to_o entertain_v society_n with_o that_o church_n church_n though_o you_o love_v that_o romish_a religion_n well_o you_o love_v your_o life_n better_o better_o in_o what_o sense_n rome_n may_v be_v term_v the_o mother_n church_n see_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 45._o section_n section_n his_o majesty_n term_v he_o the_o patriarch_n but_o not_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o west_n west_n where_o be_v your_o great_a zeal_n then_o to_o swear_v against_o your_o conscience_n for_o fashion_n but_o do_v you_o not_o take_v it_o again_o when_o you_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n at_o the_o take_n of_o your_o degree_n at_o your_o institution_n in_o your_o benefice_n at_o your_o admittance_n to_o your_o prebendry_n and_o chaplenship_n and_o oft_o recognize_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o say_a oath_n in_o your_o prayer_n before_o every_o sermon_n you_o make_v how_o then_o come_v it_o now_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o will_v not_o take_v it_o again_o to_o gain_v the_o great_a preferment_n in_o y●_z world_n but_o that_o you_o be_v out_o of_o hope_n to_o get_v any_o or_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n long_o to_o enjoy_v it_o it_o the_o bishop_n in_o k._n hen._n the_o 8._o time_n think_v themselves_o as_o good_a christian_n as_o yourself_o yet_o they_o take_v it_o or_o at_o least_o make_v a_o show_n of_o take_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n beside_o you_o call_v th●_n conscience_n or_o the_o christianity_n of_o your_o honest_a brethren_n of_o the_o clergy_n into_o question_n who_o have_v take_v the_o same_o oath_n it_o may_v be_v more_o than_o once_o and_o yet_o be_v good_a scholar_n as_o you_o pretend_v they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a what_o offence_n they_o incur_v in_o take_v it_o it_o master_n d●●lington_n in_o his_o inference_n upon_o guicciardines_n degression_n
page_n 3_o 3_o page_n 200._o 200._o which_o dispensation_n be_v first_o grant_v contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n of_o r●me_n be_v divine_n hall_n ann_n h●nry_n 8._o 8._o in_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o again_o in_o 1571._o 1571._o apol._n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n p._n 108._o 108._o eusebius_n lib._n 3_o de_fw-la vita_fw-la constant●i_fw-la constant●i_fw-la psal._n 91_o 11._o 11._o such_o a_o precedency_n have_v the_o emperor_n before_o christian_a king_n but_o no_o command_n over_o they_o they_o b._n bilson_n part_n 2_o of_o christian_a subjection_n p._n 237._o 237._o this_o penalty_n be_v not_o inflict_v for_o take_v order_n but_o for_o return_v after_o order_n take_v such_o a_o penalty_n do_v solomon_n impose_v and_o execute_v upon_o shimei_n 1._o king_n 2._o 2._o there_o be_v less_o doubt_n of_o the_o episcopal_a be_v of_o our_o bishop_n then_o of_o those_o that_o derive_v their_o be_v from_o the_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o manifold_a schism_n and_o if_o it_o come_v to_o scan_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v fai●er_a evidence_n to_o show_v for_o his_o right_n to_o that_o see_v than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o popedom_n nay_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n rome_n ro●_n 11._o 18_o etc._n etc._n etc._n he_o that_o examine_v the_o write_n will_v easy_o find_v you_o write_v without_o book_n book_n such_o a_o catholic_a then_o as_o yourself_o the_o s●ate_n stand_v as_o it_o do_v can_v by_o your_o own_o confession_n be_v no_o good_a subject_n subject_n as_o if_o only_a puritan_n be_v at_o the_o make_n of_o those_o statute_n or_o they_o alone_o make_v care_n and_o conscience_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o they_o a_o marvel_n it_o be_v that_o a_o man_n of_o your_o age_n and_o experience_n shall_v conceive_v or_o affirm_v that_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o justice_n of_o pe●c●_n which_o appertain_v to_o the_o judge_n or_o justice_n itenerant_a itenerant_a your_o hope_n must_v needs_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o vain_a presumption_n of_o some_o strange_a and_o sudden_a alteration_n in_o his_o majesty_n consider_v his_o full_a resolution_n and_o your_o many_o infirmity_n but_o your_o hope_n be_v perish_v with_o yourself_o and_o so_o may_v all_o they_o who_o entertain_v the_o like_a like_a you_o speak_v as_o if_o the_o natural_a birth_n of_o a_o man_n give_v he_o interest_n in_o the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n whereas_o there_o they_o put_v off_o all_o carnal_a affection_n and_o become_v like_a unto_o the_o angel_n angel_n the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o particular_a conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n by_o any_o ordinary_a intuition_n but_o by_o revelation_n extraordinary_a extraordinary_a many_o saint_n no_o doubt_n be_v triumphant_a which_o be_v never_o militant_a in_o that_o church_n which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n her_o head_n head_n where_o no_o offence_n be_v commit_v there_o need_v no_o pardon_n to_o be_v either_o demand_v or_o grant_v grant_v the_o service_n you_o intend_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o plot_v with_o the_o p●p●_n and_o his_o factour_n how_o you_o may_v betray_v the_o liberty_n of_o your_o country_n and_o submit_v your_o sovereign_n neck_n to_o the_o yoke_n of_o his_o service_n service_n unless_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n draw_v near_o to_o we_o than_o hitherto_o she_o have_v make_v she●_n of_o it_o can_v be_v but_o with_o the_o prejudice_n of_o all_o the_o honest_a man_n in_o england_n and_o honesty_n itself_o that_o a_o near_a union_n betwixt_o she_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v be_v conclude_v then_o already_o there_o be_v be_v contr●_n literal_a pat●●_n 2._o c._n 92_o 92_o this_o book_n be_v write_v by_o my_o l._n burleigh_n l._n treasourer_n wherein_o he_o prove_v that_o no_o romish_a catholic_n be_v then_o execute_v but_o for_o justify_v the_o bull_n of_o p●us_n v._o which_o card._n allen_n reply_v unto_o but_o so_o weak_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v thereby_o strengthen_v strengthen_v this_o sam●_n poi●t_o be_v against_o confirm_v by_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o book_n d●_n dro●●_n d●s_v r●ye●_n pag●_n 113._o 113._o ego_fw-la intraproximum_fw-la trimestro_n ●el_a s●mestre_n tot_fw-la puta_fw-la quinque_fw-la vel_fw-la sex_n reconciliavi_fw-la pro_fw-la quibus_fw-la spondere_fw-la ausi●_n quod_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la occasi●_n inciderit_fw-la a_o parte_fw-la n●stra_fw-la ●●turi_fw-la sint_fw-la omnes_fw-la t●rt_n torti_n 138._o 138._o i_o suppose_v your_o meaning_n be_v to_o be_v account_v so_o so_o i_o have_v not_o meet_v with_o any_o that_o teach_v it_o but_o holy_a father_n aristotle_n in_o the_o entrance_n of_o his_o politike_n politike_n that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o time_n be_v the_o just_a censure_n of_o your_o superior_n procure_v by_o your_o own_o malice_n against_o the_o truth_n truth_n what_o service_n can_v you_o do_v by_o die_v but_o by_o remove_v a_o dangerous_a instrument_n instrument_n so_o than_o you_o seem_v to_o confess_v that_o for_o religion_n you_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n long_o before_o you_o go_v hence_o as_o since_o you_o have_v declare_v yourself_o which_o notwithstanding_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n you_o contradict_v contradict_v pol._n lib._n 3._o cap._n ●_o in_o method_n hist_o ut_fw-la apparet_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d ex_fw-la purgatory_n purgatory_n that_o be_v you_o have_v put_v off_o a_o divine_a to_o put_v on_o a_o statesman_n but_o the_o proverb_n be_v monachus_n in_o aula_fw-la piscis_fw-la in_o arido_fw-la and_o your_o own_o say_n be_v that_o false_a religion_n be_v but_o a_o policy_n for_o the_o temporal_a service_n of_o prince_n prince_n what_o security_n do_v it_o procure_v to_o henry_n the_o four_o and_o the_o 7._o emperor_n or_o to_o chilperike_n phil._n lebel_o lewis_n the_o xii_o or_o the_o 2._o last_v hen._n of_o france_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o security_n but_o in_o that_o religion_n what_o religion_n be_v that_o which_o will_v admit_v of_o no_o security_n in_o any_o but_o itself_o itself_o they_o be_v advance_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o right_n not_o by_o the_o roman_a religion_n which_o in_o a_o manner_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n by_o which_o history_n record_n how_o king_n john_n and_o diverse_a other_o his_o majesty_n predecessor_n aswell_o of_o england_n as_o france_n and_o scotland_n have_v be_v advance_v and_o protect_v protect_v why_o then_o if_o the_o roman_a religion_n have_v remain_v among_o we_o shall_v they_o still_o have_v be_v pray_v for_o as_o if_o they_o have_v remain_v in_o purgatory_n purgatory_n all_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o first_o curse_v and_o then_o by_o all_o mean_n labour_v to_o confound_v such_o as_o oppose_v against_o she_o impute_v she_o own_o devilish_a plot_n to_o god_n work_v work_v see_v lipsius_n his_o admiranda_fw-la or_o de_fw-la magnitudine_fw-la remani_fw-la imp._n imp._n it_o be_v rather_o rome_n that_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n church_n church_n you_o be_v somewhat_o more_o favourable_a to_o she_o herein_o then_o bocius_fw-la in_o his_o 12._o book_n and_o 3_o chapter_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n terenixa_fw-la passim_fw-la pradicatur_fw-la ex_fw-la illicito_fw-la coitu_fw-la ac_fw-la propterea_fw-la fuitincemitijs_fw-la angliae_fw-la publicis_fw-la decretum_fw-la ut_fw-la illi_fw-la defunctae_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la possent_fw-la succedere_fw-la ex_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la concubinatunati_fw-la a_o most_o malicious_a lie_v lie_v she_o come_v upon_o the_o religion_n profess_v and_o establish_v in_o her_o sister_n reign_n which_o you_o call_v remainder_n of_o devotion_n and_o we_o deny_v it_o not_o but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o her_o sister_n be_v so_o unfortunate_a if_o the_o only_a come_n upon_o her_o remainder_n make_v q._n elizabeth_n so_o happy_a happy_a that_o which_o you_o call_v maintain_v of_o war_n among_o her_o neighbour_n his_o majesty_n in_o her_o ensue_a epitaph_n term_v the_o relieve_n of_o france_n and_o support_v the_o netherlands_o he_o may_v just_o have_v call_v it_o the_o set_n up_o of_o a_o just_a king_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n and_o the_o free_n of_o a_o free_a estate_n from_o the_o unjust_a usurpation_n of_o a_o foreign_a power_n power_n for_o fear_v of_o fail_v we_o be_v yearly_o supply_v with_o a_o new_a mission_n of_o shaveling_n from_o the_o fountain_n but_o sure_o i_o be_o persuade_v if_o this_o current_n be_v stop_v our_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n will_v be_v both_o more_o honourable_a and_o certain_a than_o it_o be_v be_v that_o be_v as_o far_o as_o the_o drift_n of_o your_o reason_n propose_v in_o the_o 2._o and_o 3._o section_n of_o this_o chapter_n chapter_n to_o confer_v be_v not_o proper_o by_o a_o bare_a permission_n but_o by_o donation_n donation_n kingdom_n may_v be_v bestow_v upon_o wicked_a man_n for_o many_o other_o reason_n beside_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n
afford_v as_o many_o sufficient_a and_o learned_a preacher_n and_o that_o in_o a_o more_o substantial_a and_o conscionable_a fashion_n than_o the_o pope_n hierarchy_n and_o that_o london_n alone_o afford_v more_o than_o rome_n itself_o and_o their_o readiness_n to_o supply_v sermon_n be_v not_o so_o much_o out_o of_o any_o good_a will_v they_o bear_v that_o exercise_n as_o out_o of_o ill_n will_v they_o bear_v us._n john_n advent_v lib._n 30._o anal._n boio_fw-la boio_fw-la so_o that_o in_o mr._n doctor_n logic_n a_o honest_a protestant_n may_v thus_o be_v define_v one_o that_o can_v endure_v the_o state_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v and_o can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v receive_v more_o benefit_n benefit_n you_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o all_o false_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o humane_a policy_n and_o we_o as_o true_o return_v it_o upon_o you_o that_o this_o humane_a policy_n favour_v of_o a_o false_a religion_n religion_n many_o of_o they_o though_o they_o profess_v themselves_o dead_a to_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v they_o alive_a to_o the_o flesh_n renulfus_fw-la c●str_n lib._n 7._o 7._o indeed_o by_o the_o form_n of_o word_n yet_o extant_a in_o the_o mass_n book_n and_o use_v by_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o a_o number_n shall_v communicate_v daily_o with_o he_o but_o it_o seldom_o be_v so_o so_o if_o we_o have_v no_o use_n of_o confessor_n yet_o might_n and_o ought_v inferior_n be_v keep_v in_o awe_n of_o hell_n fire_n by_o their_o preacher_n and_o superior_n be_v tell_v of_o their_o error_n in_o state_n by_o their_o counsellor_n but_o you_o seem_v to_o assure_v his_o majesty_n that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v tell_v of_o his_o error_n in_o confession_n he_o shall_v in_o rebellion_n rebellion_n 2._o cor._n 5._o 18._o 18._o bell_n the_o pe●●t_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la front_n pag._n 129._o 129._o premon_n 125_o 125_o see_v novel_a doct_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o premon_n the_o 3._o 3._o epist._n ad_fw-la front_n p●g_n 140._o 140._o pag._n 326._o 326._o that_o be_v they_o do_v not_o bind_v he_o to_o present_v the_o party_n confess_v as_o appear_v both_o in_o the_o body_n and_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n canon_n gal._n 5._o 1._o 1._o if_o in_o those_o middle_a time_n when_o all_o thing_n run_v in_o a_o current_a course_n there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o statute_n make_v in_o church_n matter_n it_o must_v be_v impute_v rather_o to_o the_o want_n of_o occasion_n then_o of_o power_n the_o plantation_n or_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n chief_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o make_n of_o law_n in_o church_n matter_n matter_n when_o the_o name_n of_o a_o parliament_n begin_v in_o england_n be_v uncertain_a see_v my_o l._n coke_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o nine_o part_n of_o his_o report_n report_n i_o take_v the_o raise_n of_o new_a house_n to_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o the_o commonwealth_a the_o lawyer_n themselves_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o commons_o commons_o as_o 〈◊〉_d the_o civil_a law_n come_v not_o from_o the_o roman_a infidel_n ●hich_v notwithstanding_o stand_v well_o enough_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n court_n what_o you_o call_v catholic_a i_o know_v not_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o since_o king_n eth._n time_n many_o statute_n have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o restrain_v of_o the_o b●shop_n of_o rome_n unjust_a usurpation_n neither_o do●_n find_v that_o he_o ●●●tered_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n save_v only_o by_o command_v they_o to_o be_v turn_v into_o his_o mother_n tongue_n tongue_n i●_n by_o better_a time_n you_o mean_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n or_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o our_o church_n to_o rome_n you_o have_v certain_o very_o little_a reason_n to_o expect_v they_o from_o the_o learning_n wisdom_n and_o moderation_n of_o those_o that_o be_v now_o the_o chief_a in_o that_o profession_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o have_v both_o frequent_o and_o ful_o declare_v himself_o to_o the_o contrary_a and_o suffer_v for_o it_o by_o the_o slanderous_a tongue_n and_o pen_n of_o malicious_a romanist_n and_o namely_o eudaemon_n and_o parson_n parson_n bod_fw-mi in_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la ●epub_fw-la cap._n 8._o 8._o see_v mons●ir_n servius_n the_o king_n attorney_n general_n speech_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n paris_n sp●culum_fw-la iust._n anno_fw-la 712._o 712._o statut._n 21._o r●●_n 2._o cap._n 11._o 11._o comment_fw-fr cap._n 49._o 49._o a_o god_n contain_v the_o sea_n within_o his_o own_o bound_n and_o march_n so_o be_v it_o my_o office_n to_o make_v every_o court_n contain_v itself_o within_o its_o own_o limit_n see_v his_o majesty_n speech_n in_o parliament_n 1609._o 1609._o cap._n 17._o 17._o what_o tho●●_n clergy_n man_n be_v we_o desire_v to_o know_v and_o who_o in_o your_o sense_n be_v caluinist_n caluinist_n what_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o section_n section_n that_o his_o majesty_n favour_n to_o the_o clergy_n be_v such_o as_o not_o to_o give_v way_n to_o their_o overthrow_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o they_o to_o set_v up_o a_o few_o stipendiary_a preacher_n we_o have_v have_v good_a trial_n and_o be_v bind_v to_o bless_v god_n for_o it_o but_o sore_o against_o the_o will_n of_o all_o roman_a catholic_n it_o be_v that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v favour_v they_o so_o much_o much_o how_o calvin_n himself_o though_o he_o be_v a_o stipendiary_a minister_n please_v master_n maior_n and_o his_o brethren_n let_v his_o banishment_n more_o than_o once_o for_o his_o free_a preach_n testify_v testify_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o both_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o heir_n apparent_a be_v so_o well_o resolve_v in_o this_o point_n as_o they_o will_v never_o put_v it_o to_o the_o question_n question_n our_o sermon_n be_v not_o so_o cheap_a as_o your_o mass_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o very_a life_n and_o soul_n of_o your_o priesthood_n priesthood_n the_o untruth_n of_o this_o assertion_n appear_v in_o my_o answer_n answer_n as_o if_o all_o those_o who_o be_v call_v lord_n and_o go_v in_o rochets_fw-mi be_v not_o by_o their_o place_n conformable_a to_o the_o discipline_n &_o have_v often_o before_o they_o come_v to_o that_o place_n subscribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n establish_v by_o law_n law_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o turn_n lay_v with_o you_o where_o lay_v man_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n these_o kind_n of_o clergy_n man_n desire_v no_o satisfaction_n from_o you_o but_o wish_v you_o have_v be_v as_o careful_a to_o maintain_v that_o truth_n which_o once_o you_o profess_v as_o to_o confute_v their_o pretend_a error_n which_o confutation_n notwithstanding_o you_o speak_v much_o of_o but_o no_o where_o perform_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o undertake_v undertake_v you_o may_v rather_o call_v they_o temporize_v then_o temperate_a temperate_a it_o be_v well_o that_o other_o know_v they_o too_o if_o any_o such_o there_o be_v who_o in_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o call_v cath._n and_o yet_o promise_v themselves_o not_o only_a member_n but_o minister_n of_o our_o church_n but_o our_o hope_n be_v that_o their_o number_n be_v not_o such_o as_o you_o vaunt_v of_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o honest_a man_n and_o good_a scholar_n shall_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o subscribe_v to_o our_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o in_o judgement_n approve_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o substance_n of_o that_o religion_n religion_n have_v we_o have_v the_o like_a temperate_a course_n hold_v with_o they_o or_o the_o like_a liberty_n afford_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n they_o will_v have_v think_v themselves_o happy_a happy_a their_o wife_n and_o child_n be_v bind_v to_o pray_v for_o you_o in_o regard_n of_o your_o fatherly_a care_n of_o they_o they_o it_o be_v well_o that_o you_o account_v yourself_o one_o of_o the_o honest_a man_n and_o good_a scholar_n but_o they_o be_v so_o far_o i_o hope_v from_o account_v you_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o utter_o condemn_v and_o mislike_v your_o course_n course_n but_o it_o please_v god_n you_o shall_v die_v among_o stranger_n and_o not_o live_v to_o see_v that_o toleration_n you_o desire_v neither_o shall_v any_o of_o they_o we_o hope_v that_o yet_o live_v and_o desire_v to_o see_v it_o it_o as_o if_o the_o whole_a fortune_n of_o greece_n depend_v upon_o your_o submission_n to_o that_o church_n church_n what_o assurance_n can_v there_o be_v on_o our_o part_n from_o they_o who_o hold_v y●_z faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v with_o heretic_n but_o you_o forget_v your_o promise_n make_v to_o my_o lord_n grace_n of_o